Selected quad for the lemma: scripture_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
scripture_n world_n worship_n year_n 58 3 4.4307 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A64611 The summe of Christian religion, delivered by Zacharias Ursinus first, by way of catechism, and then afterwards more enlarged by a sound and judicious exposition, and application of the same : wherein also are debated and resolved the questions of whatsoever points of moment have been, or are controversed in divinitie / first Englished by D. Henry Parry, and now again conferred with the best and last Latine edition of D. David Pareus, sometimes Professour of Divinity in Heidelberge ; whereunto is added a large and full alphabeticall table of such matters as are therein contained ; together with all the Scriptures that are occasionally handled, by way either of controversie, exposition, or reconciliation, neither of which was done before, but now is performed for the readers delight and benefit ; to this work of Ursinus are now at last annexed the Theologicall miscellanies of D. David Pareus in which the orthodoxall tenets are briefly and solidly confirmed, and the contrary errours of the Papists, Ubiquitaries, Antitrinitaries, Eutychians, Socinians, and Arminians fully refuted ; and now translated into English out of the originall Latine copie by A.R. Ursinus, Zacharias, 1534-1583.; Parry, Henry, 1561-1616.; Pareus, David, 1548-1622. Theologicall miscellanies.; A. R. 1645 (1645) Wing U142; ESTC R5982 1,344,322 1,128

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

john_n 16.30_o eph._n 5.25_o 26._o christ_n love_v the_o church_n and_o give_v himself_o for_o it_o that_o he_o may_v sanctify_v it_o and_o cleanse_v it_o by_o the_o wash_n of_o water_n through_o the_o word_n he_o be_v unchangeable_a heaven_n and_o earth_n shall_v pass_v but_o my_o word_n shall_v not_o pass_v he_o be_v truth_n itself_o and_o the_o fountain_n of_o truth_n 5.2_o mat._n 24.38_o john_n 0781_o 0_o 8.14_o john_n 14.6_o eph._n 5.2_o though_o i_o bear_v record_n of_o myself_o yet_o my_o record_n be_v true_a i_o be_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n he_o be_v of_o unspeakable_a mercy_n even_o as_o christ_n have_v love_v we_o and_o have_v give_v himself_o for_o we_o to_o be_v a_o offering_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o a_o sweet_a smell_a savour_n to_o god_n he_o be_v angry_a against_o sin_n 17._o john_n 3.16_o rev._n 6.16_o 17._o and_o take_v vengeance_n thereof_o yea_o of_o hide_a sin_n he_o that_o believe_v not_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o see_v life_n but_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n abide_v on_o he_o fall_v on_o we_o and_o hide_v we_o from_o the_o presence_n of_o he_o that_o sit_v on_o the_o throne_n and_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o the_o lamb_n for_o the_o great_a day_n of_o his_o wrath_n be_v come_v and_o who_o can_v stand_v the_o son_n therefore_o be_v god_n by_o nature_n and_o equal_a to_o the_o father_n 4_o the_o scripture_n in_o like_a sort_n attribute_v all_o divine_a operation_n to_o the_o son_n as_o it_o do_v unto_o the_o father_n and_o it_o communicate_v unto_o he_o 1._o all_o general_a effect_n and_o work_n common_a to_o the_o whole_a three_o person_n as_o that_o he_o be_v creator_n 1.3_o john_n 1.3_o heb._n 1.3_o by_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n make_v likewise_o that_o he_o be_v the_o preserver_n and_o governor_n of_o all_o thing_n bear_v up_o all_o thing_n by_o his_o mighty_a word_n 2._o it_o appropriate_v unto_o he_o certain_a special_a office_n and_o function_n appertain_v to_o the_o safety_n of_o his_o church_n as_o that_o he_o send_v prophet_n apostle_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o father_n send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o 4.11_o john_n 20_o 21._o ephes_n 4.11_o he_o therefore_o give_v some_o to_o be_v apostle_n some_o prophet_n some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n that_o he_o furnish_v his_o minister_n with_o necessary_a gift_n and_o grace_n i_o will_v give_v you_o a_o mouth_n and_o wisdom_n where_o against_o all_o your_o adversary_n shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o speak_v 1.18_o john_n 1.18_o nor_o resist_v that_o he_o reveal_v unto_o we_o his_o spiritual_a doctrine_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o unto_o we_o that_o he_o confirm_v this_o doctrine_n by_o miracle_n and_o they_o go_v forth_o and_o preach_v every_o where_o 16._o mark_v 16.20_o 1_o cor._n 11.23_o mat._n 28.19_o rev._n 22.16_o john_n 16.14_o john_n 10.14_o 16._o and_o the_o lord_n wrought_v with_o they_o and_o confirm_v the_o word_n with_o sign_n that_o follow_v that_o he_o institute_v sacrament_n i_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o which_o i_o also_o have_v deliver_v unto_o you_o baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o reveal_v thing_n to_o come_v i_o jesus_n have_v send_v my_o angel_n to_o testify_v unto_o you_o these_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n he_o shall_v receive_v of_o i_o and_o shall_v show_v it_o unto_o you_o that_o he_o gather_v the_o church_n i_o be_o the_o good_a shepherd_n and_o know_v i_o and_o be_o know_v of_o i_o other_o sheep_n i_o have_v also_o which_o be_v not_o of_o this_o fold_n they_o also_o must_v i_o bring_v and_o they_o shall_v hear_v my_o voice_n and_o there_o shall_v be_v one_o sheep-fold_n and_o one_o shepherd_n that_o he_o inlightn_v the_o understanding_n and_o heart_n of_o man_n no_o man_n know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o 14.27_o mat._n 11.27_o luke_n 24.45_o john_n 1.33_o titus_n 2.14_o john_n 15.5_o gal._n 2.20_o mat._n 11.28_o john_n 14.27_o then_o open_v he_o their_o understanding_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o scripture_n that_o he_o govern_v the_o action_n and_o life_n of_o the_o godly_a without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o thus_o i_o live_v yet_o not_o i_o now_o but_o christ_n live_v in_o i_o that_o he_o minister_v comfort_n in_o temptation_n come_v unto_o i_o all_o you_o that_o be_v weary_a and_o lade_v and_o i_o will_v ease_v you_o peace_n i_o leave_v with_o you_o my_o peace_n i_o give_v unto_o you_o that_o he_o strengthen_v and_o defend_v we_o against_o the_o temptation_n of_o satan_n and_o preserve_v those_o that_o turn_v unto_o he_o by_o a_o true_a faith_n 12.8_o john_n 16.33_o john_n 10.28_o john_n 14.14_o 2_o cor._n 12.8_o even_o unto_o the_o end_n be_v of_o good_a cheer_n i_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n my_o sheep_n shall_v not_o perish_v for_o ever_o and_o no_o man_n shall_v take_v they_o out_o of_o my_o hand_n that_o he_o hear_v those_o that_o pray_v unto_o he_o if_o you_o shall_v ask_v any_o thing_n in_o my_o name_n i_o will_v do_v it_o i_o beseech_v the_o lord_n thrice_o and_o he_o answer_v i_o my_o grace_n be_v sufficient_a for_o thou_o that_o he_o forgive_v sin_n justifi_v and_o adopt_v unto_o we_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 9.6_o esay_n 53.11_o mat._n 9.6_o by_o his_o knowledge_n my_o righteous_a servant_n shall_v justify_v many_o that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v power_n to_o remit_v sin_n on_o the_o earth_n as_o many_o as_o receive_v he_o 17.31_o john_n 1.12_o john_n 10.28_o 1_o john_n 5.20_o act_n 10.42_o act_n 17.31_o to_o they_o he_o give_v power_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o give_v life_n everlasting_a i_o give_v unto_o they_o eternal_a life_n this_o same_o be_v very_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n that_o he_o judge_v the_o world_n it_o be_v he_o that_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n a_o judge_n of_o quick_a and_o dead_a because_o he_o have_v appoint_v a_o day_n in_o the_o which_o he_o will_v judge_v the_o world_n in_o righteousness_n by_o that_o man_n who_o he_o have_v appoint_v these_o divine_a work_n attribute_v unto_o the_o son_n differ_v so_o from_o the_o divine_a property_n which_o be_v attribute_v unto_o he_o as_o effect_n from_o their_o cause_n so_o that_o than_o his_o property_n work_v they_o 5._o the_o equality_n of_o honour_n and_o worship_n depend_v of_o the_o equality_n of_o essence_n property_n he_o esay_n 42.8_o he_o have_v equal_a honour_n give_v he_o and_o work_n i_o will_v not_o give_v my_o glory_n to_o any_o other_o but_o the_o scripture_n give_v equal_a honour_n and_o worship_n to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n therefore_o they_o be_v true_o equal_a in_o godhead_n and_o in_o all_o the_o perfection_n thereof_o the_o minor_a be_v confirm_v 1._o by_o testimony_n 16._o psal_n 97._o heb._n 1.6_o rev_n 5.13_o john_n 5.23_o john_n 14.1_o psal_n 45.7_o he●_n 1.8_o act_n 30_o 28._o 1_o tim._n 16._o prove_v that_o he_o be_v worship_v of_o angel_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o that_o all_o shall_v honour_v the_o son_n as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n faith_n and_o hope_n be_v due_a unto_o he_o you_o believe_v in_o god_n believe_v also_o in_o i_o 2._o he_o be_v call_v god_n absolute_o and_o simple_o as_o be_v the_o father_n 3._o the_o epithet_n or_o title_n of_o divine_a honour_n which_o be_v every_o where_n in_o the_o scripture_n attribute_v unto_o the_o son_n as_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o the_o great_a god_n and_o saviour_n the_o lord_n himself_o from_o heaven_n the_o lord_n of_o glory_n the_o lord_n of_o lord_n and_o king_n of_o king_n power_n and_o eternal_a kingdom_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n the_o bridegroom_n husband_n head_n of_o the_o church_n god_n of_o the_o temple_n which_o be_v all_o the_o elect_a trust_v and_o belief_n in_o he_o invocation_n for_o he_o be_v worship_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o bridegroom_n of_o the_o church_n at_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n thanksgiving_n for_o his_o divine_a benefit_n furthermore_o albeit_o the_o name_n of_o god_n especial_o be_v put_v absolute_o and_o without_o restraint_n do_v evident_o prove_v the_o son_n equality_n with_o the_o father_n as_o it_o have_v be_v say_v yet_o see_v that_o signify_v more_o thing_n and_o be_v also_o apply_v to_o other_o who_o be_v not_o by_o nature_n god_n we_o be_v diligent_o to_o collect_v and_o to_o have_v in_o a_o readiness_n those_o testimony_n in_o which_o thing_n proper_a to_o the_o true_a god_n only_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o
wickedness_n of_o man_n nature_n arise_v pag._n 45._o will._n see_v the_o word_n freewill_n pag._n 75._o 76._o etc._n etc._n will-worship_n be_v false_a worship_n 540._o what_o god_n will_n be_v 638._o how_o we_o pray_v that_o that_o will_n may_v be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n 638._o 639._o of_o who_o god_n will_v be_v to_o be_v do_v 640._o wisdom_n christ_n be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n 255._o wish_v how_o god_n be_v say_v to_o wish_v any_o thing_n pag._n 87._o word_n vide_fw-la scripture_n abundant_o why_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o word_n 230._o 249._o the_o word_n make_v flesh_n expound_v 242._o 254._o see_v the_o word_n flesh_n the_o word_n be_v a_o teacher_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n prove_v by_o sundry_a testimony_n pag._n 234._o the_o word_n a_o person_n before_o jesus_n be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n pag._n 248._o the_o word_n be_v equal_a with_o the_o father_n pag._n 258._o the_o word_n be_v consubstantial_a with_o the_o father_n pag._n 261._o a_o confession_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o word_n make_v by_o the_o father_n of_o antioch_n pag._n 289._o how_o the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v absolve_v and_o condemn_v pag._n 485._o work_n two_o reason_n why_o the_o virtue_n of_o ethnic_n please_v not_o god._n page_n 44._o our_o good_a work_n that_o be_v praiseworthy_a proceed_v not_o from_o ourselves_o but_o be_v god_n gift_n pag._n 87._o good_a work_n how_o say_v to_o be_v we_o how_o not_o page_n 89._o not_o perfect_a in_o the_o regenerate_v yet_o their_o imperfection_n pardon_v page_n 93._o how_o christ_n will_v render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n page_n 94._o no_o good_a work_n of_o the_o creature_n merit_v reward_n page_n 217._o evil_n work_v merit_n punishment_n just_o ibidem_fw-la why_o our_o work_n be_v imperfect_a pag._n 387._o ten_o cause_n why_o we_o can_v be_v justify_v by_o work_n ibidem_fw-la the_o reward_n of_o work_n be_v not_o of_o merit_n but_o of_o grace_n ibidem_fw-la etc._n etc._n three_o cause_n why_o god_n promise_v to_o reward_v our_o work_n page_n 388._o we_o must_v not_o be_v careless_a of_o do_v good_a work_n page_n 389._o with_o what_o difference_n faith_n and_o good_a work_n be_v require_v in_o they_o that_o be_v to_o be_v justify_v page_n 392._o concern_v the_o impulsive_a cause_n of_o good_a work_n page_n 499._o a_o table_n of_o their_o kind_n page_n 509._o three_o thing_n make_v a_o good_a work_n page_n 508._o three_o sort_n of_o work_n fail_v in_o the_o former_a condition_n page_n 509._o a_o table_n of_o the_o kind_n of_o good_a work_n ibid._n etc._n etc._n whether_o the_o saint_n work_v be_v perfect_o good_a page_n 510_o how_o they_o please_v god_n though_o they_o be_v not_o perfect_o good_a page_n 511._o why_o we_o be_v to_o do_v good_a work_n and_o whether_o they_o be_v necessary_a page_n 512._o 513._o whether_o they_o can_v merit_v of_o god_n page_n 514._o world_n five_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n world_n page_n 181._o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n pag._n 181._o 182._o how_o god_n make_v it_o pag._n 185._o it_o be_v create_v of_o nothing_o ibid._n 168._o reasins_z why_o not_o make_v in_o a_o moment_n pag._n 168._o for_o what_o cause_v god_n create_v the_o world_n pag._n 187._o worship_n what_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v pag._n 540._o will_v worship_n be_v false_a worship_n ibidem_fw-la thing_n indifferent_a be_v to_o be_v diligent_o discern_v from_o god_n worship_n page_n 541._o z_o zeal_n what._n pag._n 599._o a_o table_n of_o the_o most_o choice_a place_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v occasional_o handle_v by_o way_n either_o of_o explication_n controversy_n or_o reconciliation_n or_o by_o way_n of_o vindication_n from_o all_o adversary_n especial_o papist_n anabaptist_n and_o other_o heretic_n a_o work_n which_o be_v never_o do_v before_o but_o now_o compose_v and_o compile_v with_o great_a labour_n and_o industry_n for_o the_o conscionable_a reader_n satisfaction_n and_o benefit_n genesis_n chapt._n ver._n page_n 1_o 31_o 50_o 2_o 7_o 335_o  _fw-fr 15_o 101_o  _fw-fr 17_o 297._o 366_o 4_o 13_o 506_o  _fw-fr 16_o 169_o 6_o 9_o 94_o 7_o 1_o 169_o 15_o 6_o 391_o  _fw-fr 16_o 53_o 28_o 12_o 191_o 32_o 30_o 152_o 45_o 5.7_o 209_o  _fw-fr 8_o 202_o 48_o 16_o 567_o exodus_fw-la 3_o 14_o 173_o 12_o 2_o 210_o 21_o 6_o 320_o 31_o 27_o 581_o 32_o 7_o 384_o 33_o 11_o 152_o  _fw-fr 19_o 201_o number_n 15_o 30_o 482_o 23_o 19_o 207_o deuteronomy_n chapt._n ver._n page_n 4_o 10_o 152_o 5_o 24_o 152_o 15_o 8_o 156_o  _fw-fr ●0_n 490_o 17_o ●●_o 483_o 27_o ●●_o 387_o 32_o 29_o 87_o josua_n 9_o 15_o 574_o 1_o samuel_n 16_o 14_o 345_o 2_o samuel_n 12_o 11_o 202_o 16_o 10_o 202_o 24_o 1_o 97._o 202_o 1_o king_n 22_o 23_o 2●0_n 2_o king_n 19_o 34_o 566_o 2_o chronicle_n 15_o 17_o 94_o job_n chapt._n ver._n page_n 5_o 1_o 567_o 7_o 7.10_o 369_o 10_o 20_o 368_o 12_o 25_o 202_o 14_o 2_o 367_o 17_o 1_o 369_o 19_o 1_o 368_o psalm_n 8_o 6_o 169_o 10_o 4_o 147.283_o 14_o 1_o 147_o 32_o 1.2_o 382_o 37_o 24_o 140_o 45_o 8_o 228_o 51_o 4_o 507_o  _fw-fr 12_o 345_o 55_o 2_o 147_o 82_o 6_o 169_o 88_o 10_o 368_o 104_o 4.29_o 335_o 106_o 31_o 392_o 110_o 1_o 251_o 115_o 3_o 205_o 116_o 3_o 303_o  _fw-fr 11_o 94_o 119_o 2.9_o 94_o  _fw-fr 10_o 202_o 143_o 3.22_o 382_o 146_o 4_o 368_o proverb_n  _fw-fr 25_o 246_o 8_o 4_o 166.207_o 16_o 15_o 384_o 17_o 1_o 209_o 21_o  _fw-fr  _fw-fr ecclesiastes_n 1_o 4_o 207_o 7_o 3_o 84_o 9_o 1_o 141_o esay_n 1_o 19_o 90_o 10_o 5_o 209_o 20_o 6_o 202_o 40_o 6_o 367_o 45_o 7_o 199_o 61_o 1_o 128_o 63_o 17_o 202_o jeremy_n chapt._n ver._n page_n 1_o 5_o 420_o  _fw-fr 7.13_o 90_o 18_o 8_o 199_o 23_o 6_o 392_o 31_o 31_o 622_o 48_o 10_o 202_o lamentation_n 3_o 37_o 202_o ezekiel_n 8_o 14.19_o 554_o 12_o 25_o 206_o 14_o 9_o 167_o 18_o 13_o 199_o  _fw-fr 20_o 53_o  _fw-fr 24_o 141_o 33_o 11_o 102.165.199_o 43_o 7_o 521_o 47_o 1_o 521_o daniel_n 4_o 32_o 209_o 9_o 24_o 392_o hosea_n 13_o 9_o 199_o joel_n 2_o 28_o 344_o amos._n 3●_n 6_o 101.186.199_o zachary_n 1_o 3_o 90_o  _fw-fr 11_o 567_o 12_o 10_o 331_o malachy_n 3_o 1_o 256_o matthew_n 1_o 21_o 222_o 3_o 11_o 235_o 4_o 3.6.9_o 193_o 5_o 6_o 490_o  _fw-fr 19_o 58_o  _fw-fr 25_o 56_o  _fw-fr 48_o 94_o 6_o 24_o 446_o  _fw-fr 34_o 646_o 7_o 17_o 56_o  _fw-fr 18_o 389_o 10_o 16_o 353_o 12_o 37_o 384_o  _fw-fr 31_o 57.558_o 13_o 15_o 353_o  _fw-fr 30_o 489_o 15_o 41_o 192_o 16_o 19_o 489_o 18_o 16_o 420_o chapt._n ver._n page_n  _fw-fr 17_o 491_o  _fw-fr 18_o 362.483_o 19_o 12_o 511_o  _fw-fr 17_o 91_o 20_o 15_o 201_o 22_o 30_o 84.98_o  _fw-fr 38.39_o 36.37_o 23_o 35_o 53_o  _fw-fr 37_o 165.168_o 24_o 25_o 367_o 25_o 40_o 567_o 26_o 53_o 214_o 27_o 46_o 291.292_o 28_o 10_o 565_o  _fw-fr 19_o 410.412.414_o  _fw-fr 20_o 429_o mark_n 5_o 36_o 386_o 10_o 14_o 26_o 12_o 30_o 36.37_o 13_o 32_o 334_o 14_o 25_o 439_o 16_o 16_o 414.420_o luke_n 1_o 34_o 271_o 337_o  _fw-fr 37_o 215_o 10_o 21_o 91_o  _fw-fr 27_o 36.37_o 14_o 23_o 490_o 15_o 10_o 564_o 16_o 21_o 366_o  _fw-fr 23.25_o 564_o 17_o 10_o 383.387_o 22_o 25_o 487_o 23_o 43_o 304.365_o  _fw-fr 46_o 274_o 24_o 26_o 325_o john_n 1_o 3_o 340_o  _fw-fr 5.10_o 249_o  _fw-fr 12_o 250_o  _fw-fr 13.14_o 166.239.241.246_o  _fw-fr 16.18_o 231_o  _fw-fr 18_o 129.130_o  _fw-fr 26_o 258_o  _fw-fr 51_o 191_o 2_o 19.21_o 243_o 3_o 16_o 246.353.357.298_o  _fw-fr 17_o 277.330_o  _fw-fr 18_o 332_o  _fw-fr 36_o 299_o 4_o 1_o 412_o  _fw-fr 21.22.23_o 458_o  _fw-fr 24_o 335_o chapt._n ver._n page_n 5_o 17.19_o 245.252_o  _fw-fr 19_o 247.252_o  _fw-fr 19.20_o 252_o  _fw-fr 21_o 253_o  _fw-fr 22.27_o 330_o  _fw-fr 23_o 250_o  _fw-fr 26_o 252.263_o 6_o 40.54.56_o 447_o  _fw-fr 51_o 434_o  _fw-fr 54_o 373_o  _fw-fr 62.63_o 440.446_o 7_o 39_o 319_o 8_o 41_o 244_o  _fw-fr 44_o 218_o  _fw-fr 46_o 152_o 9_o 3_o 73_o 10_o 16_o 359_o  _fw-fr 26_o 253_o  _fw-fr 29_o 263_o 12_o 40_o 249_o  _fw-fr 47_o 330_o  _fw-fr 6_o 130_o 14_o 17_o 344_o  _fw-fr 21_o 249_o 15_o 5_o 130.389_o  _fw-fr 16_o 356_o  _fw-fr 26_o 337.343_o 16_o 7_o 319.343_o  _fw-fr 11_o 331_o 17_o 3_o 266.267_o  _fw-fr 5_o 265_o  _fw-fr 9_o 353_o  _fw-fr 24_o 319_o  _fw-fr 26_o 265_o 19_o 30_o 305_o  _fw-fr 36_o 468_o 20_o 23_o 363_o acts._n 1_o 11_o 315.316.320_o 2_o 3_o 344_o  _fw-fr 23_o 202.293_o  _fw-fr 33_o 343_o  _fw-fr 38_o 337_o 4_o 28_o 202_o 5_o 4_o 609_o  _fw-fr 3.38_o 218_o  _fw-fr 28_o 214_o 7_o 6_o 366_o  _fw-fr 56_o 325_o 10_o 43_o 298_o  _fw-fr 44_o
to_o other_o man_n if_o indeed_o we_o neglect_v it_o we_o both_o make_v our_o religion_n to_o be_v suspect_v &_o shall_v undergo_v great_a punishment_n for_o our_o negligence_n &_o ignorance_n neither_o will_v the_o lord_n have_v the_o care_n &_o keep_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n commit_v to_o we_o scholar_n chief_o only_o for_o our_o own_o cause_n but_o other_o for_o the_o learned_a themselves_o understand_v the_o term_n and_o method_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v expect_v they_o shall_v instruct_v and_o interpret_v unto_o other_o see_v therefore_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o school_n as_o unto_o child_n to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o may_v be_v right_o teach_v catechism_n be_v necessary_a neither_o indeed_o can_v this_o age_n learn_v unless_o brevity_n be_v use_v nor_o can_v the_o part_n of_o a_o discipline_n be_v dextrous_o and_o with_o due_a proportion_n of_o agreement_n between_o they_o be_v handle_v either_o by_o teacher_n or_o learner_n unless_o they_o first_o conceive_v in_o their_o mind_n some_o short_a sum_n of_o the_o same_o for_o both_o these_o respect_n be_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o we_o read_v such_o oft_o repetition_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o brief_a sum_n of_o thing_n as_o repent_v and_o believe_v the_o gospel_n he_o that_o shall_v believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v war_n you_o a_o good_a warfare_n keep_v faith_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n and_o see_v that_o it_o be_v say_v colos_n 3.16_o let_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n dwell_v in_o you_o plenteous_o in_o all_o wisdom_n explication_n must_v be_v add_v aggreeable_a to_o the_o speech_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o apostle_n neither_o be_v a_o catechism_n any_o thing_n else_o but_o a_o brief_a explication_n of_o such_o speech_n but_o because_o the_o little_a book_n call_v melanchthons_n examen_fw-la be_v of_o that_o nature_n which_o i_o propound_v to_o you_o and_o the_o author_n have_v comprise_v with_o great_a fidelity_n &_o dexterity_n the_o head_n of_o christian_a religion_n under_o a_o apt_a and_o perspicuous_a stile_n of_o word_n as_o also_o it_o be_v of_o no_o small_a consequence_n that_o a_o like_a form_n of_o catechism_n shall_v be_v extant_a in_o sundry_a church_n stir_v up_o yourselves_o to_o learn_v and_o conceive_v that_o these_o wretched_a paper_n of_o we_o be_v swadling-band_n wherein_o christ_n will_v be_v find_v swaddle_v up_o you_o see_v many_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o do_v commend_v these_o swathel_n unto_o you_o and_o serious_o exhort_v you_o to_o the_o embrace_n of_o they_o by_o which_o i_o humble_o beseech_v you_o to_o delight_v in_o they_o as_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n your_o own_o salvation_n the_o duty_n we_o owe_v to_o posterity_n the_o example_n of_o the_o more_o reform_a church_n your_o condition_n of_o life_n your_o present_a age_n your_o desire_n and_o hope_n imminent_a danger_n and_o the_o reward_n and_o punishment_n to_o be_v expect_v from_o god_n but_o however_o our_o admonition_n may_v be_v necessary_a yet_o of_o none_o effect_n we_o well_o know_v without_o the_o suggestion_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n therefore_o turn_v ourselves_o unto_o god_n let_v we_o give_v thanks_o to_o he_o that_o his_o will_n be_v we_o shall_v be_v bear_v in_o this_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o pray_v that_o we_o may_v be_v teach_v and_o govern_v of_o he_o certain_a preamble_n on_o that_o catechism_n of_o christian_a religion_n which_o be_v deliver_v and_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n and_o school_n throughout_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o county_n palatine_n the_o preamble_n or_o preparatory_a preface_n to_o this_o catechism_n be_v partly_o general_n concern_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o partly_o special_a concern_v catechism_n alone_o the_o general_n preface_v touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v seven_o 1_o what_o and_o what_o manner_n of_o doctrine_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v 2_o what_o be_v the_o part_n thereof_o and_o what_o the_o difference_n of_o each_o part_n 3_o wherein_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o other_o sect_n and_o from_o philosophy_n also_o and_o why_o these_o difference_n be_v to_o be_v retain_v 4_o whence_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o it_o alone_o come_v from_o god_n 5_o by_o what_o testimony_n the_o certainty_n thereof_o be_v confirm_v 6_o for_o what_o cause_n no_o other_o doctrine_n beside_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o church_n 7_o how_o manifold_a be_v the_o course_n of_o teach_v and_o learn_v this_o doctrine_n 1_o what_o and_o what_o manner_n of_o doctrine_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o entire_a and_o uncorrupt_a doctrine_n of_o the_o law_n and_o gospel_n touch_v the_o true_a god_n church_n the_o definition_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o his_o will_n work_n and_o worship_n which_o doctrine_n be_v reveal_v by_o god_n himself_o comprise_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o confirm_v by_o sundry_a miracle_n and_o divine_a testimony_n by_o which_o the_o holy-ghost_n work_v powerful_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o god_n choose_v and_o collect_v unto_o himself_o out_o of_o mankind_n a_o everlasting_a church_n in_o which_o he_o may_v be_v glorify_v both_o in_o this_o life_n and_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v this_o doctrine_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o special_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o god_n will_v have_v eminent_a in_o the_o world_n and_o sever_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o mankind_n according_a unto_o these_o say_n of_o scripture_n fly_v idol_n come_v out_o from_o among_o they_o and_o separate_v yourselves_o if_o there_o come_v any_o unto_o you_o and_o bring_v not_o this_o doctrine_n 18.4_o 1_o john_n 5.21_o 2_o cor._n 6.17_o 2_o john_n 10._o esay_n 52.11_o rev._n 18.4_o bid_v he_o not_o god_n speed_n be_v you_o holy_a touch_v no_o unclean_a thing_n you_o that_o bear_v the_o vessel_n of_o the_o lord_n go_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n that_o you_o receive_v not_o of_o her_o plague_n now_o god_n will_v have_v this_o separation_n make_v glory_n 1._o his_o glory_n for_o his_o own_o glory_n for_o as_o he_o will_v not_o have_v himself_o couple_v with_o idol_n and_o devil_n so_o he_o will_v have_v his_o truth_n sever_v from_o falsehood_n and_o lie_n sect_n 2._o reasins_z why_o god_n will_v have_v his_o church_n distinguish_v from_o other_o sect_n and_o his_o household_n separate_v from_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v from_o the_o child_n of_o satan_n it_o be_v contumelious_a so_o to_o think_v of_o god_n as_o that_o he_o will_v have_v such_o child_n as_o persecute_v he_o 6.15_o 2_o cor_fw-la 6.15_o it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o impious_a doctrine_n and_o patron_n of_o the_o blasphemous_a for_o what_o concord_n have_v christ_n with_o belial_n elect._n 2._o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o elect._n the_o consolation_n and_o salvation_n of_o his_o elect._n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o church_n be_v visible_o behold_v in_o this_o world_n that_o the_o elect_v disperse_v throughout_o all_o mankind_n may_v know_v to_o what_o society_n they_o be_v to_o join_v themselves_o and_o be_v gather_v unto_o the_o church_n may_v lay_v hold_n on_o this_o sound_a comfort_n that_o they_o be_v of_o that_o company_n which_o be_v acceptable_a and_o please_a unto_o god_n and_o have_v the_o promise_n of_o everlasting_a life_n for_o god_n will_v that_o all_o which_o be_v to_o be_v save_v be_v gather_v unto_o the_o church_n in_o this_o life_n because_o without_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n sect_n 3._o notes_n whereby_o the_o church_n be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o sect_n how_o the_o church_n be_v know_v and_o what_o be_v her_o badge_n and_o mark_n whereby_o she_o be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o sect_n be_v at_o large_a discourse_v of_o in_o the_o tract_n of_o the_o church_n the_o note_n be_v three_o 1._o purity_n of_o doctrine_n 2._o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 3._o obedience_n towards_o god_n in_o every_o point_n of_o doctrine_n whether_o of_o faith_n or_o of_o manner_n object_n yea_o but_o oftentimes_o great_a vice_n abound_v in_o the_o church_n also_o answ_n i_o confess_v indeed_o many_o time_n great_a vice_n overgrow_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n but_o they_o be_v not_o patronise_v or_o maintain_v as_o fall_v out_o in_o other_o sect_n nay_o the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o first_o herself_o that_o reprehend_v and_o condemn_v they_o before_o any_o other_o in_o the_o church_n fault_n be_v commit_v but_o with_o present_a reproof_n and_o speedy_a reformation_n as_o long_o as_o this_o remain_v so_o long_o remain_v the_o church_n 2_o what_o be_v the_o part_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o what_o the_o difference_n of_o each_o part_n
fallacy_n and_o condemn_v their_o idol_n and_o other_o vice_n than_o any_o other_o sect_n which_o rather_o either_o tolerate_v and_o wink_v at_o or_o patronize_v and_o defend_v they_o the_o world_n hate_v i_o because_o i_o testify_v of_o it_o that_o the_o work_v thereof_o be_v evil_a 15.19_o john_n 5.17_o john_n 15.19_o if_o you_o be_v of_o the_o world_n the_o world_n will_v love_v she_o own_o thereof_o god_n marvellous_a preservation_n thereof_o the_o marvellous_a protection_n and_o wonderful_a preservation_n of_o this_o doctrine_n against_o the_o fury_n of_o satan_n and_o other_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n for_o whereas_o no_o religion_n be_v more_o dangerous_o at_o all_o time_n without_o intermission_n assail_v by_o tyrant_n and_o heretic_n than_o this_o of_o the_o church_n and_o god_n notwithstanding_o have_v hitherto_o wonderful_o protect_v it_o against_o the_o canker_a rancour_n and_o malice_n of_o enemy_n and_o the_o very_a gate_n of_o hell_n insomuch_o as_o it_o alone_o have_v persist_v invincible_a whereas_o other_o religion_n either_o not_o at_o all_o or_o slender_o assail_v have_v speedy_o perish_v and_o sudden_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n hence_o we_o conclude_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v approve_v of_o god_n care_v for_o and_o secure_v by_o he_o it_o punishment_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o it_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o enemy_n for_o without_o doubt_n that_o religion_n be_v allow_v and_o advance_v by_o god_n who_o adversary_n god_n punish_v for_o oppugn_v and_o withstand_v it_o but_o history_n both_o old_a and_o new_a have_v register_v and_o record_v the_o dreadful_a and_o heavy_a punishment_n inflict_v by_o god_n on_o they_o who_o resist_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n therefore_o god_n countenance_v and_o authorise_v that_o doctrine_n now_o although_o the_o wicked_a sometime_o flourish_v in_o this_o world_n and_o the_o church_n lie_v tread_v under_o foot_n yet_o the_o end_n and_o event_n testify_v yea_o and_o scripture_n teach_v that_o this_o be_v a_o work_n of_o god_n providence_n and_o no_o casualty_n or_o accident_n neither_o be_v god_n therefore_o more_o please_v with_o they_o or_o displease_v with_o his_o church_n for_o the_o church_n be_v always_o preserve_v even_o amid_o her_o persecution_n and_o be_v at_o length_n deliver_v whereas_o the_o short_a felicity_n of_o tyrant_n and_o wicked_a imp_n have_v a_o most_o doleful_a and_o eternal_a destruction_n follow_v it_o neither_o be_v thereby_o the_o force_n of_o this_o proof_n weaken_v because_o that_o all_o the_o persecutor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o in_o tragical_a manner_n punish_v in_o this_o life_n as_o be_v antiochus_n herod_n and_o the_o rest_n for_o while_o god_n do_v take_v vengeance_n on_o most_o of_o they_o in_o this_o life_n he_o do_v sufficient_o show_v what_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v think_v of_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o complice_n very_o that_o they_o be_v his_o enemy_n who_o without_o they_o repent_v he_o will_v plunge_v into_o eternal_a plague_n the_o beginning_n and_o feel_n of_o the_o which_o be_v desperation_n in_o which_o all_o the_o enemy_n of_o christian_a religion_n end_v their_o day_n cause_n 2_o object_n not_o for_o this_o cause_n yea_o they_o who_o be_v not_o oppress_v with_o any_o other_o calamity_n of_o this_o life_n to_o conclude_v that_o it_o may_v be_v manifest_a that_o they_o be_v not_o only_o for_o other_o transgression_n punish_v of_o god_n god_n do_v so_o often_o denounce_v in_o his_o word_n that_o such_o shall_v be_v the_o end_n of_o his_o enemy_n cause_n ans_fw-fr yea_o for_o this_o cause_n and_o that_o for_o this_o very_a cause_n because_o they_o go_v about_o to_o extinguish_v the_o people_n and_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n yea_o furthermore_o they_o be_v not_o a_o few_o from_o who_o while_o they_o lie_v in_o torment_n their_o conscience_n wre_v out_o this_o confession_n that_o they_o have_v draw_v these_o misery_n upon_o themselves_o by_o persecute_v the_o godly_a as_o from_o antiochus_n epiphanes_n and_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la and_o since_o that_o all_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o calamity_n and_o death_n be_v destitute_a of_o comfort_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o suffer_v as_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v far_o from_o true_a religion_n now_o that_o which_o the_o wicked_a alone_o do_v there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o their_o sin_n for_o which_o they_o suffer_v punishment_n wherefore_o the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n be_v no_o obscure_a testimony_n of_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o they_o even_o as_o god_n himself_o say_v of_o pharaoh_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n have_v i_o stir_v thou_o up_o that_o i_o may_v show_v my_o power_n in_o thou_o 9_o exod._n 9_o rom._n 9_o and_o that_o my_o name_n may_v be_v declare_v throughout_o all_o the_o earth_n martyr_n confession_n and_o constancy_n of_o martyr_n the_o testimony_n and_o constancy_n of_o martyr_n who_o seal_v this_o doctrine_n with_o their_o blood_n do_v show_v in_o the_o very_a midst_n of_o most_o exquisite_a torment_n that_o they_o do_v so_o think_v indeed_o as_o they_o teach_v and_o be_v firm_o persuade_v in_o their_o heart_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v profess_v and_o that_o they_o draw_v that_o comfort_n out_o of_o it_o which_o they_o do_v preach_v unto_o other_o to_o wit_n that_o for_o christ_n sake_n they_o be_v true_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o god_n care_v for_o they_o in_o the_o hour_n and_o point_n of_o death_n god_n therefore_o sustain_v they_o by_o this_o lively_a comfort_n thereby_o witness_v that_o he_o affect_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n for_o which_o they_o suffer_v thereof_o the_o piety_n of_o the_o writer_n and_o professor_n thereof_o the_o true_a pretty_a and_o holiness_n of_o those_o who_o write_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o make_v open_a profession_n of_o the_o doctrine_n comprise_v therein_o for_o that_o religion_n be_v most_o sacred_a &_o divine_a which_o make_v man_n holy_a and_o acceptable_a unto_o god_n but_o the_o patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n and_o other_o who_o heretofore_o have_v and_o now_o do_v earnest_o embrace_v this_o doctrine_n far_o exceed_v man_n of_o other_o religion_n in_o true_a virtue_n and_o integrity_n as_o by_o the_o conference_n and_o comparison_n will_v appear_v wherefore_o it_o accord_v with_o reason_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n rather_o than_o of_o any_o other_o religion_n whatsoever_o be_v true_a and_o divine_a vice_n their_o plain_a deal_n in_o detect_v vice_n their_o ingenuity_n and_o plain_a deal_n in_o open_v fault_n commit_v either_o by_o they_o or_o they_o who_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v use_v in_o commit_v this_o doctrine_n to_o writing_n ghost_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o hol●_n ghost_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o in_o spiration_n the_o scripture_n be_v write_v the_o testimony_n i_o say_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o they_o which_o believe_v that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o full_a faith_n and_o firm_a persuasion_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o god_n according_a unto_o the_o tenor_n of_o this_o scripture_n will_v be_v merciful_a and_o good_a unto_o we_o which_o faith_n there_o follow_v joyfulness_n rest_v on_o god_n and_o call_v on_o his_o name_n with_o assure_a hope_n of_o obtain_v both_o other_o good_a thing_n which_o according_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o this_o word_n we_o beg_v of_o he_o and_o even_o eternal_a life_n itself_o for_o this_o assent_n and_o assurance_n this_o lively_a consolation_n of_o the_o godly_a te_v neither_o on_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n but_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a effect_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o effect_n how_o it_o be_v inflame_v and_o strengthen_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n through_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n read_v hear_v and_o meditate_a all_o the_o godly_a in_o a_o lively_a and_o certain_a feel_n of_o their_o heart_n have_v experience_n by_o this_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n all_o that_o be_v convert_v unto_o christ_n have_v the_o certainty_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n main_o confirm_v and_o sure_o seal_v up_o in_o their_o heart_n and_o this_o argument_n as_o it_o be_v proper_a unto_o the_o regenerate_a so_o it_o force_v their_o heart_n alone_o not_o only_o to_o credit_v the_o truth_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o also_o persuade_v they_o to_o give_v a_o absolute_a assent_n thereunto_o and_o rest_v settle_v thereon_o all_o the_o other_o testimony_n before_o allege_v be_v common_a to_o those_o that_o be_v not_o convert_v unto_o christ_n who_o they_o also_o convict_v and_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o they_o that_o contradict_v this_o doctrine_n but_o of_o themselves_o they_o neither_o
with_o wisdom_n of_o word_n lest_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o none_o effect_n the_o ground_n therefore_o and_o sum_n of_o doctrine_n be_v not_o obscure_a except_o it_o be_v unto_o the_o reprobate_n who_o contemn_v the_o truth_n or_o stubborn_o reject_v it_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v if_o our_o gospel_n be_v hide_v it_o be_v hide_v to_o they_o that_o a●e_v lose_v in_o who_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n have_v blind_v their_o mind_n that_o be_v of_o the_o infidel_n that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o shine_v unto_o they_o all_o the_o day_n long_o have_v i_o stretch_v forth_o my_o hand_n to_o a_o disobedient_a and_o gainsaying_n people_n the_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n be_v iniquity_n and_o deceit_n he_o have_v leave_v off_o to_o understand_v and_o to_o do_v good_a i_o give_v thou_o thanks_n o_o father_n lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n because_o thou_o have_v hide_v these_o thing_n from_o the_o wise_a man_n and_o man_n of_o understanding_n and_o have_v open_v they_o unto_o babe_n now_o if_o they_o reply_v again_o 3.15_o 2_o instance_n divine_a matter_n be_v obscure_a unto_o all_o man_n 1_o cor._n 2.14_o answ_n not_o of_o themselves_o but_o through_o our_o natural_a blindness_n which_o in_o the_o regenerate_a be_v clear_v by_o god_n spirit_n luke_n 8.10_o 2_o cor._n 3.15_o that_o divine_a matter_n be_v hard_a and_o obscure_a to_o all_o man_n as_o it_o be_v say_v the_o natural_a man_n perceive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n unto_o he_o neither_o can_v he_o know_v they_o because_o they_o be_v spiritual_o discern_v they_o shall_v have_v call_v to_o mind_n 1._o that_o this_o ignorance_n and_o hardness_n rise_v not_o of_o the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o of_o the_o blindness_n of_o man_n mind_n 2._o that_o the_o obscurity_n since_o in_o very_a deed_n it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o scripture_n but_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o our_o nature_n do_v not_o always_o remain_v in_o those_o who_o be_v regenerate_v but_o be_v remove_v from_o they_o by_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n according_a to_o those_o say_n it_o be_v give_v unto_o you_o to_o know_v the_o secret_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o to_o other_o in_o parable_n that_o when_o they_o see_v they_o shall_v not_o see_v and_o when_o they_o hear_v they_o shall_v not_o understand_v until_o this_o day_n when_o moses_n be_v read_v the_o veil_n be_v lay_v over_o their_o heart_n nevertheless_o when_o their_o heart_n shall_v be_v turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n the_o veil_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o from_o this_o very_a place_n may_v we_o easy_o refute_v that_o which_o they_o object_n that_o we_o ourselves_o answer_n 3_o instance_n the_o scripture_n a_o long_a time_n not_o know_v answer_n in_o that_o we_o say_v the_o scripture_n have_v not_o be_v understand_v for_o these_o many_o age_n in_o the_o popish_a church_n do_v confess_v the_o obscurity_n of_o it_o for_o the_o ignorance_n which_o have_v be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o end_n in_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o their_o own_o perverseness_n who_o have_v not_o a_o desire_n to_o know_v and_o embrace_v the_o truth_n as_o paul_n say_v because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v 11._o 2_o thes_n 2.10_o 11._o therefore_o god_n shall_v send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n whereas_o therefore_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o ground_n and_o sum_n of_o doctrine_n be_v not_o obscure_a answer_n 4_o instance_n many_o place_n obscure_a answer_n yet_o we_o confess_v that_o some_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v more_o dark_a and_o difficult_a than_o other_o but_o 1._o they_o be_v such_o that_o although_o they_o be_v not_o understand_v yet_o the_o ground_n may_v both_o stand_v and_o be_v understand_v 2._o the_o interpretation_n of_o these_o place_n depend_v not_o on_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n but_o the_o exposition_n of_o they_o be_v to_o be_v seek_v by_o conference_n of_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n more_o clear_a 3._o if_o we_o can_v find_v it_o yet_o lest_o we_o shall_v affirm_v any_o uncertain_a thing_n concern_v divine_a matter_n our_o conscience_n not_o satisfy_v we_o in_o it_o we_o must_v suspend_v our_o judgement_n until_o god_n shall_v open_v unto_o we_o some_o certain_a meaning_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n we_o be_v to_o hold_v those_o with_o thankful_a mind_n in_o which_o god_n have_v leave_v no_o place_n of_o doubt_v for_o we_o but_o when_o we_o answer_v thus_o unto_o our_o adversary_n they_o rise_v again_o upon_o we_o out_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o grant_v they_o for_o because_o we_o confess_v that_o some_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v hard_a to_o be_v understand_v than_o other_o instance_n 5_o instance_n because_o of_o the_o dulness_n and_o slowness_n of_o man_n mind_n in_o learning_n divine_a matter_n 8.13_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o interpretation_n act_v 8.13_o neither_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v most_o clear_a be_v understand_v of_o the_o people_n as_o the_o eunuch_n of_o queen_n candaces_n do_v complain_v and_o that_o the_o ministry_n itself_o be_v therefore_o ordain_v of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n for_o that_o it_o seem_v good_a unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o add_v for_o our_o instruction_n a_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v short_a because_o ourselves_o in_o writing_n and_o teach_v do_v expound_v the_o scripture_n and_o do_v exhort_v all_o man_n to_o the_o read_n and_o hear_v the_o exposition_n thereof_o out_o of_o these_o they_o conclude_v that_o beside_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v necessary_a and_o that_o therefore_o what_o the_o church_n do_v pronounce_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v without_o controversy_n to_o be_v receive_v it_o answ_n 1._o it_o be_v necessary_a as_o a_o help_n and_o instrument_n not_o as_o if_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n without_o it_o but_o we_o confess_v 1._o that_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v necessary_a in_o the_o church_n not_o for_o that_o without_o this_o to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n be_v simple_o impossible_a whereas_o both_o god_n be_v able_a when_o it_o please_v he_o to_o instruct_v he_o even_o without_o the_o scripture_n itself_o much_o more_o than_o without_o the_o exposition_n of_o his_o minister_n and_o the_o godly_a learn_v many_o thing_n out_o of_o scripture_n without_o interpreter_n and_o of_o the_o contrary_a side_n except_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o mind_n be_v open_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n heavenly_a doctrine_n seem_v always_o alike_o obscure_a unto_o we_o whether_o it_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o of_o the_o church_n but_o for_o that_o it_o please_v god_n to_o appoint_v this_o ordinary_a way_n of_o instruct_v we_o and_o himself_o have_v command_v the_o maintenance_n and_o use_n of_o his_o ministry_n in_o the_o church_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o instrument_n which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v most_o free_o use_v for_o our_o salvation_n 2._o although_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v necessary_a scripture_n answ_n 2._o though_o interpret_n be_v necessary_a yet_o so_o that_o it_o must_v not_o be_v a_o deprave_a of_o scripture_n yet_o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o grant_v any_o licence_n to_o the_o minister_n to_o bring_v new_a ordinance_n into_o the_o church_n that_o nothing_o do_v more_o tie_v they_o to_o this_o doctrine_n alone_o comprehend_v in_o the_o scripture_n than_o this_o very_a function_n of_o expound_v the_o scripture_n for_o to_o interpret_v another_o man_n word_n be_v not_o to_o feign_v at_o our_o pleasure_n a_o meaning_n either_o divers_a from_o they_o or_o repugnant_a unto_o they_o but_o to_o render_v the_o same_o meaning_n and_o sentence_n either_o in_o more_o word_n or_o in_o more_o plain_a word_n or_o at_o least_o in_o such_o as_o may_v be_v more_o fit_a for_o their_o capacity_n who_o we_o teach_v and_o withal_o when_o there_o be_v need_n to_o show_v that_o this_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o author_n which_o we_o affirm_v to_o be_v now_o such_o a_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v make_v by_o this_o mean_n scripture_n 3_o point_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o interpret_n scripture_n 1._o that_o the_o phrase_n be_v consider_v and_o the_o proper_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n find_v out_o 2._o that_o the_o order_n and_o coherence_n of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o the_o text_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v declare_v
fruit_n also_o which_o we_o have_v trial_n and_o experience_n of_o in_o this_o life_n heretofore_o it_o have_v be_v say_v 24.16_o all_o sin_n mortal_a in_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o pardonable_a by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n psal_n 32.5_o pro._n 24.16_o that_o all_o sin_n be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n mortal_a against_o this_o sentence_n some_o oppose_v that_o which_o be_v say_v i_o will_v confess_v my_o wickedness_n unto_o the_o lord_n and_o thou_o forgave_v the_o punishment_n of_o my_o sin_n and_o a_o just_a man_n fall_v seven_o time_n and_o rise_v again_o whence_o they_o gather_v that_o there_o be_v some_o sin_n the_o committer_n whereof_o continue_v still_o just_a and_o therefore_o deserve_v not_o eternal_a death_n but_o they_o reason_v amiss_o from_o that_o which_o befall_v to_o sin_n but_o by_o a_o accident_n to_o that_o which_o be_v by_o itself_o in_o sin_n for_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o there_o be_v many_o sin_n for_o which_o the_o saint_n do_v not_o lose_v holiness_n and_o righteousness_n neither_o become_v obnoxious_a to_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n but_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v not_o by_o the_o smallness_n or_o nature_n of_o the_o sin_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n who_o do_v not_o impute_v neither_o will_v punish_v with_o eternal_a death_n those_o sin_n which_o yet_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n deserve_v it_o this_o do_v the_o prophet_n most_o evident_o show_v in_o the_o same_o psalm_n 143.2_o psal_n 143.2_o when_o he_o say_v bless_a be_v he_o who_o wickedness_n be_v forgive_v enter_v not_o into_o judgement_n with_o thy_o servant_n for_o in_o thy_o sight_n shall_v none_o that_o live_v be_v justify_v object_n 2._o 5.22_o mat._n 5.22_o it_o be_v say_v whosoever_o be_v angry_a with_o his_o brother_n unadvised_o shall_v be_v culpable_a of_o judgement_n and_o whosoever_o say_v unto_o his_o brother_n racha_n shall_v be_v worthy_a to_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o council_n and_o whosoever_o shall_v say_v fool_n shall_v be_v worthy_a to_o be_v punish_v with_o hell_n fire_n whence_o they_o conclude_v see_v christ_n himself_o make_v degree_n of_o punishment_n and_o sin_n so_o that_o of_o these_o former_a he_o threaten_v hell_n fire_n but_o unto_o the_o three_o only_o therefore_o there_o be_v some_o sin_n small_a than_o those_o which_o deserve_v eternal_a punishment_n but_o the_o answer_n unto_o this_o be_v manifest_a out_o of_o the_o word_n themselves_o which_o be_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o civil_a judgement_n and_o punishment_n when_o he_o mention_v judgement_n and_o a_o council_n for_o he_o do_v not_o here_o speak_v of_o the_o civil_a order_n but_o dispute_v against_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o pharisee_n concern_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o god_n law_n and_o concern_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n against_o both_o inward_a and_o outward_a sin_n for_o neither_o can_v nor_o aught_o to_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o magistrate_n with_o corporal_a punishment_n either_o such_o gesture_n as_o signify_v some_o bitterness_n or_o contempt_n or_o bad_a affection_n if_o they_o have_v not_o accompany_v they_o a_o endeavour_n to_o do_v any_o man_n injury_n now_o whereas_o in_o the_o three_o place_n he_o name_v hell_n fire_n he_o do_v not_o exempt_v the_o other_o two_o kind_n of_o sin_n from_o eternal_a punishment_n but_o signify_v that_o the_o three_o shall_v receive_v a_o sharp_a punishment_n at_o god_n hand_n then_o the_o other_o object_n 3._o it_o be_v say_v every_o sin_n and_o blasphemy_n shall_v be_v forgive_v unto_o man_n 12.31_o mat._n 12.31_o but_o the_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v not_o be_v forgive_v unto_o man_n neither_o in_o this_o world_n nor_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v hence_o they_o will_v gather_v that_o some_o sin_n be_v forgive_v in_o this_o world_n some_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v that_o be_v in_o purgatory_n and_o some_o be_v never_o forgive_v of_o which_o these_o be_v mortal_a but_o the_o other_o venial_a in_o their_o own_o nature_n answ_n 1._o but_o neither_o here_o neither_o elsewhere_o do_v christ_n teach_v that_o some_o sin_n be_v forgive_v in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v only_o sin_n be_v remit_v in_o this_o world_n only_o for_o that_o all_o other_o sin_n be_v forgive_v not_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v but_o in_o this_o world_n both_o christ_n signify_v in_o this_o place_n and_o the_o scripture_n elsewhere_o teach_v because_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o sin_n be_v not_o remit_v but_o only_o to_o those_o who_o repent_v ghost_n no_o sin_n which_o may_v not_o be_v remit_v except_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o he_o deni_v that_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v remit_v either_o in_o this_o world_n or_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v that_o he_o may_v more_o significant_o express_v the_o denial_n of_o pardon_n to_o it_o 2._o whether_o they_o say_v forgiveness_n to_o be_v in_o this_o world_n or_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v yet_o this_o stand_v immovable_a that_o it_o come_v not_o of_o the_o nature_n or_o corruption_n of_o the_o sin_n but_o of_o free_a mercy_n for_o christ_n sake_n and_o if_o every_o sin_n be_v so_o grievous_a that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v purge_v but_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n then_o doubtless_o they_o do_v great_a despite_n and_o contumely_n unto_o that_o blood_n who_o so_o extenuate_v any_o sin_n as_o to_o deny_v that_o it_o deserve_v eternal_a punishment_n unto_o which_o the_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v equivalent_a 3._o even_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n there_o be_v many_o mortal_a sin_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v forgive_v in_o this_o life_n wherefore_o either_o they_o must_v make_v all_o these_o to_o be_v even_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n venial_a or_o they_o will_v never_o prove_v out_o of_o this_o place_n that_o the_o ●●nalnesse_n of_o the_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o forgiveness_n object_n 4._o it_o be_v say_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v reveal_v from_o heaven_n against_o all_o ungodliness_n 1.17_o rom._n 1.17_o and_o know_v you_o not_o that_o the_o unrighteous_a shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n ●_o 1_o cor._n 6._o ●_o out_o of_o these_o and_o the_o like_a place_n they_o gather_v that_o see_v they_o be_v mortal_a sin_n which_o shut_v man_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o all_o sin_n do_v not_o so_o therefore_o there_o be_v some_o sin_n which_o in_o their_o own_o nature_n be_v not_o mortal_a but_o they_o conclude_v more_o than_o follow_v by_o force_n of_o reason_n for_o that_o some_o sin_n be_v venial_a there_o be_v no_o doubt_n 3.15_o all_o sin_n shut_v man_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v they_o not_o remit_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 3.15_o but_o that_o come_v by_o grace_n remit_v those_o sin_n which_o without_o remission_n will_v shut_v man_n doubtless_o from_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n object_n 5._o it_o be_v say_v if_o any_o man_n work_n burn_v he_o shall_v lose_v but_o he_o shall_v be_v safe_a himself_o nevertheless_o yet_o as_o it_o be_v by_o fire_n therefore_o say_v they_o some_o sin_n cast_v man_n into_o fire_n that_o be_v into_o some_o punishment_n but_o not_o eternal_a this_o also_o we_o grant_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o sin_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o pardon_n which_o befall_v to_o those_o who_o hold_v the_o foundation_n which_o be_v christ_n for_o to_o build_v on_o the_o foundation_n wood_n and_o stubble_n that_o be_v to_o patch_v the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o unnecessary_a question_n humane_a opinion_n and_o tradition_n which_o often_o be_v occasion_n of_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n and_o often_o of_o idolatry_n and_o error_n it_o be_v not_o so_o light_a a_o sin_n as_o they_o deem_v it_o who_o doit_n but_o deserve_v eternal_a malediction_n except_o remission_n be_v make_v by_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v declare_v in_o the_o revelation_n chap._n 22._o object_n 6._o it_o be_v say_v a_o high_a priest_n take_v from_o among_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o offer_v for_o sin_n 5.1_o heb_fw-mi 5.1_o as_o well_o for_o his_o own_o part_n as_o for_o the_o people_n ans_fw-fr this_o place_n show_v that_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v not_o venial_a by_o themselves_o or_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n but_o for_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o typical_a sacrifice_n and_o therefore_o it_o quite_o and_o clean_o overthrow_v the_o opinion_n of_o our_o adversary_n for_o if_o all_o sin_n even_o of_o a_o righteous_a priest_n be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n so_o great_a that_o they_o can_v be_v purge_v but_o by_o the_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o they_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n deserve_v everlasting_a death_n ob._n 7._o it_o be_v say_v
or_o make_v breach_n of_o some_o commandment_n by_o reason_n of_o weakness_n terror_n of_o present_a torment_n or_o fear_v of_o danger_n and_o yet_o not_o oppugn_v of_o purpose_n and_o malice_n the_o truth_n know_v unto_o he_o or_o make_v a_o utter_a apostasy_n from_o religion_n and_o piety_n and_o persevere_v in_o a_o sensual_a senseless_a contempt_n but_o retire_v unto_o repentance_n in_o this_o life_n wherefore_o reign_v sin_n or_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n differ_v as_o a_o general_a from_o a_o particular_a the_o latter_a of_o they_o intimate_v a_o precedency_n of_o the_o former_a but_o not_o the_o former_a a_o consequence_n of_o the_o latter_a 2.19_o it_o be_v not_o incident_a to_o the_o elect._n john_n 10.28_o 2_o tim._n 2.19_o 1_o pet._n 1.5_o 1_o john_n 5.15_o 1_o john_n 2.19_o the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o incident_a unto_o the_o elect_n and_o those_o who_o be_v true_o convert_v because_o the_o elect_n can_v never_o perish_v but_o be_v certain_o save_v by_o god_n my_o sheep_n shall_v no_o man_n pluck_v out_o of_o my_o hand_n with_o the_o like_a place_n they_o then_o who_o thus_o offend_v be_v never_o true_o convert_v and_o choose_v they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o that_o many_o of_o the_o reprobate_n be_v say_v to_o be_v lighten_v and_o to_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o have_v taste_v the_o heavenly_a gift_n the_o good_a word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v 6.7_o how_o many_o of_o the_o reprobate_n be_v say_v in_o scripture_n to_o be_v lighten_v and_o sanctify_v 1_o pet._n 2._o heb._n 6.7_o and_o last_o of_o all_o to_o have_v be_v sanctify_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o testament_n likewise_o in_o peter_n to_o have_v escape_v from_o the_o filthiness_n of_o the_o world_n the_o apostle_n themselves_o show_v that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o foregoing_a and_o detesiation_n of_o error_n and_o vice_n for_o a_o season_n and_o last_o of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o christ_n merit_n even_o for_o the_o wipe_v away_o of_o their_o sin_n also_o and_o the_o offer_n thereof_o make_v to_o they_o by_o his_o word_n and_o sacrament_n which_o they_o show_v when_o they_o interpret_v that_o lightning_n and_o taste_n to_o be_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o righteousness_n and_o call_v they_o dog_n and_o swine_n not_o make_v so_o again_o but_o return_v to_o their_o vomit_n and_o wallow_v in_o the_o mire_n and_o compare_v they_o to_o the_o earth_n drink_v in_o the_o rain_n but_o bring_v forth_o in_o stead_n of_o good_a herb_n thorn_n and_o briar_n for_o these_o thing_n agree_v not_o to_o true_a faith_n and_o conversion_n blasphemy_n we_o be_v not_o last_o to_o pronounce_v any_o man_n a_o sinner_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n until_o we_o see_v he_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n in_o apostasy_n &_o blasphemy_n we_o be_v not_o rash_o to_o pronounce_v who_o they_o be_v that_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o we_o may_v not_o judge_v of_o this_o sin_n until_o the_o end_n that_o be_v until_o we_o know_v they_o who_o once_o have_v the_o truth_n and_o confess_v themselves_o to_o be_v convict_v and_o persuade_v of_o it_o with_o hatred_n thereof_o to_o persecute_v and_o reproach_v it_o or_o to_o end_v their_o life_n in_o hatred_n and_o despite_n against_o it_o the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v manifest_a because_o we_o be_v not_o the_o beholder_n of_o man_n heart_n if_o it_o be_v object_v that_o there_o be_v a_o sin_n unto_o death_n i_o say_v not_o that_o thou_o shall_v pray_v for_o it_o if_o he_o will_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v pray_v for_o those_o who_o sin_n to_o death_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o we_o may_v discern_v they_o from_o other_o we_o answer_v that_o john_n do_v not_o universal_o forbid_v that_o we_o pray_v for_o any_o so_o sin_v but_o at_o such_o time_n as_o that_o be_v manifest_a unto_o we_o either_o by_o some_o divine_a testimony_n or_o by_o manifest_a argument_n and_o the_o sinner_n own_o profession_n but_o before_o this_o be_v certain_a and_o manifest_a unto_o we_o we_o ought_v to_o desire_v of_o god_n the_o conversion_n of_o all_o man_n and_o as_o much_o as_o in_o we_o lie_v to_o endeavour_v it_o as_o it_o be_v say_v i_o exhort_v that_o first_o of_o all_o supplication_n prayer_n intercession_n will_n 1_o tim._n 2.1_o 2_o tim._n 2.24_o 25_o 26._o mat._n 5.44_o act._n 7.60_o our_o prayer_n for_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o truth_n must_v be_v conditional_a with_o submission_n to_o god_n will_n and_o give_v of_o thanks_n be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n and_o the_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n must_v not_o strive_v but_o must_v be_v gentle_a towards_o all_o man_n apt_a to_o teach_v suffer_v the_o evil_a man_n patient_o instruct_v they_o with_o meekness_n that_o be_v contrary_a mind_v prove_v if_o god_n at_o any_o time_n will_v give_v they_o repentance_n that_o they_o may_v know_v the_o truth_n and_o that_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n of_o who_o they_o be_v take_v they_o may_v come_v to_o amendment_n and_o perform_v his_o will_n and_o pray_v for_o they_o which_o hurt_v you_o and_o persecute_v you_o and_o lord_n lay_v not_o this_o sin_n to_o their_o charge_n if_o it_o be_v reply_v that_o so_o it_o will_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o our_o prayer_n shall_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n if_o not_o know_v of_o it_o we_o pray_v for_o they_o who_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o answer_n be_v ready_a that_o prayer_n be_v make_v for_o they_o with_o a_o condition_n unpardonable_a our_o prayer_n for_o they_o be_v but_o conditional_a it_o argue_v not_o but_o that_o their_o sin_n may_v be_v notwithstanding_o unpardonable_a by_o which_o we_o submit_v our_o will_n and_o desire_n to_o the_o counsel_n of_o god_n that_o he_o will_v convert_v and_o save_v the_o adversary_n of_o the_o truth_n if_o they_o may_v be_v recover_v but_o that_o he_o will_v repress_v they_o and_o punish_v they_o if_o he_o have_v not_o appoint_v to_o recover_v they_o by_o the_o same_o answer_n be_v this_o argument_n dissolve_v their_o sin_n be_v not_o unpardonable_a for_o who_o we_o must_v pray_v but_o we_o must_v pray_v for_o all_o man_n therefore_o no_o man_n sin_n be_v unpardonable_a 1._o we_o deny_v the_o minor_a because_o if_o it_o appear_v by_o any_o divine_a testimony_n or_o by_o manifest_a argument_n and_o their_o own_o profession_n that_o they_o be_v cast_v away_o whether_o they_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o otherwise_o do_v not_o repent_v we_o must_v not_o pray_v for_o they_o 2._o neither_o be_v the_o major_a true_a for_o if_o we_o know_v not_o whether_o they_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o be_v reject_v of_o god_n or_o no_o we_o must_v pray_v for_o they_o but_o with_o that_o condition_n if_o they_o may_v be_v recover_v our_o of_o these_o thing_n also_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v answer_n be_v make_v to_o this_o object_n he_o that_o must_v fear_v lest_o he_o have_v any_o unpardonable_a sin_n faithful_a the_o fear_n of_o unpardonable_a sin_n belong_v to_o the_o wicked_a not_o to_o the_o faithful_a can_v never_o be_v assure_v of_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o life_n everlasting_a but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o sin_n unpardonable_a which_o be_v commit_v before_o the_o end_n of_o a_o man_n life_n no_o man_n can_v be_v assure_v that_o he_o have_v not_o or_o shall_v not_o have_v such_o sin_n therefore_o there_o be_v either_o no_o such_o sin_n or_o no_o man_n can_v be_v assure_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o his_o own_o salvation_n for_o the_o minor_a of_o this_o reason_n be_v false_a concern_v those_o who_o believe_v for_o they_o must_v certain_o think_v that_o they_o neither_o have_v nor_o have_v the_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o there_o be_v no_o condemnation_n to_o they_o who_o be_v in_o christ_n neither_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v this_o sin_n because_o that_o no_o man_n can_v pluck_v the_o sheep_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o his_o hand_n obj._n 1_o adam_n and_o peter_n obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n adam_n and_o peter_n sin_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n because_o they_o deny_v the_o manifest_a and_o know_a truth_n of_o god_n therefore_o some_o man_n sin_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n answ_n the_o proof_n of_o the_o minor_a be_v a_o false_a definition_n for_o not_o every_o denial_n or_o rejection_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o that_o only_a which_o have_v accompany_v it_o a_o inward_a hatred_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o which_o of_o a_o purpose_a intent_n and_o with_o horrible_a fury_n endevour_v to_o oppress_v
visible_a shape_n be_v not_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o god_n be_v hereby_o manifest_a for_o that_o the_o scripture_n with_o great_a consent_n reach_v that_o god_n be_v see_v of_o no_o man_n neither_o can_v be_v see_v and_o incomprehensible_a and_o unchangeable_a but_o those_o visible_a shape_n be_v not_o always_o the_o same_o object_n 2._o to_o these_o they_o add_v that_o which_o be_v say_v ●ace_n gen._n 32.30_o exod_n 33.11_o deut_n 34.10_o deut_n 5.24_o 2._o cot._fw-la 13.13_o how_o god_n be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d see_v face_n 〈◊〉_d ●ace_n that_o god_n be_v see_v of_o jacob_n face_n to_o face_n and_o of_o moses_n and_o of_o all_o the_o people_n and_o that_o all_o of_o we_o shall_v see_v god_n face_n to_o face_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v by_o which_o metaphor_n or_o borrow_a speech_n be_v signify_v a_o clear_a and_o conspicuous_a manifestation_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o be_v perceive_v notwith_a the_o eye_n of_o the_o body_n but_o of_o the_o mind_n either_o by_o mean_n as_o by_o the_o word_n by_o his_o work_n and_o outward_a token_n and_o such_o as_o run_v into_o the_o sense_n whence_o the_o mind_n may_v gather_v somewhat_o of_o god_n or_o without_o mean_n by_o inward_a revelation_n and_o albeit_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v shall_v be_v a_o farte_n more_o bright_a knowledge_n of_o god_n then_o now_o yet_o to_o know_v god_n most_o perfect_o be_v proper_a to_o god_n only_o as_o it_o be_v say_v not_o that_o any_o man_n have_v see_v the_o father_n save_v he_o which_o be_v of_o god_n 46._o 〈◊〉_d c._n 46._o he_o have_v see_v the_o father_n so_o far_o be_v it_o that_o the_o invisible_a infinite_a and_o everlasting_a deity_n may_v ever_o be_v conceive_v by_o bodily_a eye_n who_o nature_n be_v not_o to_o perceive_v any_o object_n but_o such_o as_o be_v finite_a and_o limit_v object_n 3._o they_o have_v allege_v also_o those_o say_n wherein_o the_o part_n of_o man_n body_n be_v attribute_v to_o god_n but_o these_o also_o be_v not_o proper_o god_n h●w_o the_o part_n of_o 〈◊〉_d ●odva●e_v attribute_v unto_o god_n but_o by_o a_o metaphor_n speak_v of_o god_n whereby_o be_v signify_v to_o we_o a_o power_n in_o god_n work_v after_o a_o incomprehensible_a manner_n his_o work_n a_o certain_a shadow_n whereof_o be_v those_o action_n which_o man_n do_v by_o the_o ministry_n and_o help_n of_o their_o bodily_a part_n as_o the_o eye_n and_o ear_n signify_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o understand_v all_o thing_n the_o mouth_n the_o publish_n of_o his_o word_n the_o face_n the_o declaration_n token_n and_o feel_v of_o his_o divine_a goodness_n and_o grace_n or_o severity_n and_o anger_n the_o heart_n his_o love_n the_o hand_n and_o arm_n his_o power_n the_o foot_n his_o presence_n object_n 4._o they_o have_v affirm_v also_o because_o man_n be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o image_n of_o god_n that_o therefore_o god_n have_v a_o humane_a shape_n 4.24_o the_o image_n of_o god_n in_o man_n do_v not_o argue_v a_o bodily_a shape_n in_o god_n ephes_n 4.24_o not_o mark_v that_o the_o image_n of_o god_n consist_v not_o in_o the_o shape_n and_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n but_o in_o the_o mind_n and_o integrity_n of_o nature_n in_o wisdom_n righteousness_n and_o true_a holiness_n as_o for_o tertullian_n whereas_o he_o reason_v that_o god_n be_v a_o body_n that_o he_o speak_v improper_o therein_o and_o abuse_v the_o word_n body_n in_o stead_n of_o substance_n not_o only_a augustine_n witness_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o quod_fw-la vult_fw-la deus_fw-la but_o this_o be_v also_o a_o argument_n and_o proof_n thereof_o because_o he_o term_v also_o the_o soul_n and_o angel_n oftentimes_o body_n wherefore_o let_v we_o know_v that_o therefore_o we_o be_v teach_v the_o nature_n of_o god_n to_o be_v spiritual_a spiritual_a why_o we_o must_v know_v god_n to_o be_v spiritual_a that_o we_o may_v not_o conceive_v of_o god_n any_o thing_n which_o be_v gross_a terrene_a carnal_a and_o unworthy_a his_o divine_a majesty_n neither_o shall_v deem_v that_o he_o can_v be_v perceive_v by_o our_o bodily_a sense_n or_o in_o thought_n imagine_v but_o shall_v consider_v his_o nature_n by_o his_o word_n and_o work_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o dare_v to_o represent_v he_o by_o any_o bodily_a shape_n and_o in_o a_o word_n that_o we_o shall_v remember_v that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v not_o with_o the_o gesture_n or_o other_o thing_n of_o the_o body_n but_o with_o the_o mind_n and_o spiritual_a motion_n of_o the_o heart_n last_o see_v he_o alone_o inspire_v into_o we_o temporal_a and_o everlasting_a life_n we_o shall_v acknowledge_v the_o gift_n of_o both_o to_o come_v from_o he_o out_o of_o this_o fountain_n only_o we_o shall_v seek_v it_o and_o endeavour_v to_o refer_v it_o whole_o to_o his_o glory_n intelligent_a two_o reason_n why_o god_n be_v to_o be_v intelligent_a intelligent_a 1._o because_o he_o be_v the_o cause_n both_o of_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n and_o of_o the_o notion_n shine_v in_o it_o and_o also_o of_o that_o order_n which_o be_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o thing_n and_o common-weal_n 2._o because_o all_o intelligence_n or_o understanding_n of_o the_o creature_n come_v from_o he_o both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o faculty_n as_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o operation_n for_o neither_o can_v the_o efficient_a and_o preserve_a cause_n of_o intelligent_a nature_n and_o of_o the_o understanding_n itself_o and_o order_n in_o nature_n be_v but_o intelligent_a and_o understanding_n and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a scripture_n also_o reason_v on_o this_o wise_a he_o that_o plant_v the_o ear_n shall_v he_o not_o hear_v 94.9_o psal_n 94.9_o or_o he_o that_o make_v the_o eye_n shall_v he_o not_o see_v now_o this_o we_o be_v to_o hold_v against_o those_o who_o set_v nature_n in_o the_o place_n of_o god_n imagine_v the_o world_n and_o the_o variety_n and_o order_n of_o thing_n in_o it_o to_o arise_v from_o the_o matter_n and_o the_o inclination_n thereof_o to_o this_o form_n when_o as_o notwithstanding_o these_o thing_n can_v not_o have_v their_o be_v from_o a_o cause_n not_o intelligent_a we_o be_v to_o hold_v it_o also_o thereby_o to_o acknowledge_v not_o only_o true_a knowledge_n itself_o but_o also_o all_o ability_n of_o understanding_n and_o the_o sagacity_n and_o capability_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o mind_n to_o perceive_v to_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n eternal_a that_o be_v such_o a_o eternity_n which_o can_v have_v neither_o beginning_n 30.2_o the_o eternity_n of_o god_n without_o beginning_n or_o end_n psal_n 30.2_o nor_o any_o end_n of_o be_v agree_v to_o god_n alone_o both_o nature_n show_v forasmuch_o as_o he_o be_v the_o first_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o of_o infinite_a perfection_n and_o power_n and_o the_o scripture_n also_o recount_v as_o before_o the_o mountain_n be_v bring_v forth_o or_o ever_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o world_n be_v make_v thou_o be_v god_n from_o everlasting_a and_o world_n without_o end_n but_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v that_o not_o therefore_o only_a the_o eternity_n of_o god_n be_v so_o often_o inculcate_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o in_o regard_n hereof_o he_o may_v be_v discern_v from_o thing_n create_v but_o also_o because_o he_o will_v impart_v eternity_n unto_o we_o that_o be_v he_o have_v purpose_v and_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v give_v we_o of_o his_o eternal_a goodness_n and_o providence_n eternal_a blessing_n and_o will_v have_v continual_a care_n of_o we_o through_o all_o eternity_n and_o will_v have_v a_o kingdom_n in_o angel_n and_o man_n whereof_o shall_v be_v no_o end_n therefore_o we_o be_v give_v to_o understand_v we_o god_n eternal_a unto_o we_o that_o god_n be_v eternal_a to_o we_o that_o we_o may_v oppose_v the_o certain_a hope_n of_o eternal_a blessedness_n ground_v upon_o his_o eternity_n against_o the_o shortness_n of_o mortal_a life_n and_o against_o the_o frailty_n of_o man_n condition_n for_o see_v he_o be_v eternal_a he_o can_v and_o see_v he_o promise_v he_o will_v for_o ever_o preserve_v we_o with_o his_o protection_n for_o this_o god_n be_v our_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o and_o 111.9_o psal_n 48.11_o psal_n 111.9_o he_o have_v command_v his_o covenant_n for_o ever_o wherefore_o be_v uphold_v with_o this_o consolation_n let_v we_o neither_o refuse_n to_o suffer_v the_o short_a misery_n of_o this_o life_n neither_o prefer_v the_o short_a felicity_n thereof_o before_o eternal_a blessing_n and_o see_v god_n will_v be_v not_o only_o bountiful_a towards_o the_o godly_a but_o judge_v also_o of_o the_o ungodly_a eternal_o let_v the_o cogitation_n of_o the_o eternal_a wrath_n of_o god_n keep_v and_o hold_v we_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n that_o we_o may_v not_o desire_v to_o buy_v the_o fade_a show_n of_o whatsoever_o good_a with_o eternal_a misery_n doctrine_n god_n other_o and_o diverse_a from_o all_o
creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o principal_a question_n of_o creation_n be_v these_o 1._o whether_o the_o world_n be_v create_v of_o god_n 2._o how_o it_o be_v create_v 3._o for_o what_o cause_n it_o be_v create_v 1._o whether_o the_o world_n be_v create_v of_o god_n world_n five_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n world_n first_o the_o word_n and_o term_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v the_o name_n of_o the_o world_n be_v diverse_o use_v in_o the_o scripture_n 1._o it_o signify_v the_o universal_a frame_n of_o all_o thing_n namely_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o they_o visible_a and_o invisible_a beside_o god_n himself_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o 1.10_o john_n 1.10_o 2._o worldly_n concupiscence_n 3._o all_o mankind_n 4._o the_o wicked_a or_o those_o that_o be_v not_o regenerate_v in_o the_o world_n 5._o the_o elect_a that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v 3.16_o john_n 17.9_o 21._o john_n 3.16_o so_o god_n love_v the_o world_n here_o we_o consider_v it_o in_o the_o first_o sense_n thing_n to_o create_v signify_v three_o thing_n to_o create_v signify_v 1._o to_o ordain_v or_o constitute_v as_o the_o latin_n use_v it_o creare_fw-la consulem_fw-la to_o create_v a_o consul_n 2._o to_o make_v something_o of_o nothing_o without_o any_o motion_n with_o a_o beck_n or_o word_n only_o so_o it_o be_v take_v in_o this_o place_n 3._o the_o continuate_a of_o creation_n or_o creation_n continue_v which_o be_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n prove_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n prove_v that_o the_o world_n have_v not_o be_v from_o everlasting_a but_o have_v when_o it_o seem_v best_a to_o the_o creator_n according_a to_o his_o eternal_a counsel_n and_o will_n a_o begin_n once_o and_o be_v create_v of_o that_o only_a true_a god_n who_o have_v manifest_v himself_o in_o the_o church_n that_o he_o be_v the_o eternal_a father_n and_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n we_o know_v scripture_n by_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n by_o testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o by_o the_o whole_a history_n of_o the_o creation_n set_v down_o by_o moses_n likewise_o 4.17_o psal_n 33.6_o 9_o psal_n 104._o &_o 113._o &_o 124._o &_o 136._o &_o 146._o isa_n 44._o act_n 4.17_o out_o of_o other_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n very_o many_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v the_o heaven_n make_v and_o all_o the_o host_n of_o they_o by_o the_o breath_n of_o his_o mouth_n he_o speak_v and_o it_o be_v do_v he_o command_v and_o it_o stand_v or_o be_v create_v there_o be_v other_o place_n also_o in_o the_o psalm_n where_o more_o large_o and_o ample_o the_o wonderful_a work_n of_o god_n and_o the_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o world_n create_v by_o god_n be_v propose_v to_o be_v consider_v of_o we_o that_o through_o the_o consideration_n thereof_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o put_v our_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o god_n for_o this_o purpose_n do_v the_o lord_n himself_o propose_v unto_o job_n his_o marvellous_a and_o incomprehensible_a work_n conspicuous_a in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n 39_o job_n 38._o &_o 39_o and_o other_o thing_n also_o create_v by_o he_o to_o declare_v his_o justice_n power_n and_o providence_n reason_n 2._o by_o reason_n furthermore_o beside_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n almost_o innumerable_a it_o be_v confirm_v also_o by_o firm_a and_o true_a reason_n that_o the_o world_n be_v create_v of_o god_n such_o as_o these_o follow_v 1._o the_o original_n and_o beginning_n of_o nation_n and_o people_n show_v it_o which_o can_v not_o be_v feign_v of_o moses_n when_o as_o some_o remembrance_n and_o memorial_n of_o they_o be_v then_o extant_a among_o many_o which_o yet_o in_o process_n of_o time_n perish_v 2._o the_o novelty_n and_o lateness_n of_o all_o other_o history_n compare_v with_o the_o antiquity_n and_o ancientness_n of_o the_o sacred_a story_n 3._o the_o age_n of_o man_n decrease_v which_o show_v that_o there_o mass_n great_a strength_n in_o nature_n at_o the_o first_o and_o that_o not_o without_o some_o first_o cause_n it_o have_v decrease_v hitherto_o 4._o the_o certain_a course_n and_o race_n of_o time_n even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n unto_o the_o exhibit_v of_o the_o messiah_n 5._o the_o constitution_n and_o sound_n of_o common-weal_n 6._o the_o order_n of_o thing_n institute_v in_o nature_n which_o must_v needs_o have_v be_v produce_v and_o frame_v by_o some_o intelligent_a mind_n far_o superior_a to_o all_o thing_n 7._o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n these_o intelligent_a mind_n have_v a_o beginning_n therefore_o they_o have_v it_o from_o some_o intelligent_a cause_n 8._o the_o principle_n or_o general_a rule_n and_o natural_a notion_n ingenerate_v in_o our_o mind_n 9_o the_o tremble_a of_o conscience_n in_o the_o wicked_a 10._o the_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n profitable_o and_o wise_o ordain_v therefore_o by_o some_o cause_n understanding_n and_o ordain_v they_o 11._o last_o those_o other_o argument_n and_o reason_n also_o which_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n prove_v in_o like_a manner_n that_o the_o world_n be_v create_v of_o god_n reason_n 3_o natural_a reason_n three_o beside_o these_o reason_n it_o may_v be_v enforce_v by_o philosophical_a argument_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o nature_n that_o the_o world_n be_v create_v and_o that_o it_o be_v create_v of_o god_n although_o by_o they_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o demonstrate_v the_o time_n when_o it_o be_v create_v for_o 1._o there_o be_v no_o infinite_a process_n in_o nature_n of_o cause_n and_o effect_n for_o if_o so_o nature_n shall_v never_o attain_v unto_o her_o end_n even_o the_o produce_v of_o effect_n therefore_o this_o world_n have_v a_o beginning_n 2._o the_o noble_a and_o excellent_a of_o all_o effect_n be_v the_o world_n therefore_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o noble_a and_o excellent_a cause_n which_o be_v god_n philosopher_n how_o the_o creation_n be_v unknown_a to_o philosopher_n other_o question_n as_o whether_o the_o world_n be_v create_v from_o everlasting_a or_o in_o time_n that_o be_v whether_o it_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o equal_a perpetuity_n with_o his_o cause_n and_o so_o coeternal_a or_o whether_o it_o once_o so_o begin_v to_o be_v that_o before_o it_o have_v no_o be_v again_o whether_o if_o sometime_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v create_v and_o whether_o it_o shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o and_o if_o it_o endure_v whether_o it_o shall_v remain_v the_o same_o or_o it_o be_v to_o be_v change_v these_o and_o such_o like_a question_n can_v be_v decide_v by_o philosophy_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o all_o these_o thing_n depend_v upon_o the_o mere_a will_n of_o god_n the_o first_o mover_n of_o all_o thing_n who_o do_v nothing_o of_o necessity_n but_o with_o most_o absolute_a freedom_n now_o this_o his_o will_n be_v not_o know_v to_o any_o creature_n but_o to_o whosoever_o god_n himself_o reveal_v it_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o manifest_v to_o heathenish_a philosopher_n but_o declare_v to_o the_o church_n alone_o for_o they_o can_v possible_o collect_v any_o thing_n hereof_o by_o proceed_v from_o a_o continue_a effect_n unto_o his_o cause_n it_o follow_v indeed_o that_o there_o be_v some_o cause_n of_o those_o effect_n but_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o those_o effect_n be_v produce_v of_o that_o cause_n either_o at_o this_o or_o that_o time_n or_o from_o all_o eternity_n because_o a_o free_a agent_n may_v either_o act_v or_o suspend_v his_o action_n at_o his_o pleasure_n the_o whole_a demonstration_n hereof_o be_v thus_o bring_v in_o form_n no_o effect_n depend_v only_o of_o such_o a_o cause_n as_o work_v free_o or_o contingent_o can_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o that_o cause_n but_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v such_o a_o effect_n therefore_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n can_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n the_o first_o mover_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o it_o either_o be_v make_v from_o everlasting_a or_o in_o some_o begin_n of_o time_n world_n argument_n of_o philosopher_n against_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n now_o whatsoever_o argument_n be_v bring_v of_o philosopher_n against_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o perceive_v that_o these_o be_v not_o frame_v out_o of_o true_a philosophy_n but_o by_o the_o imagination_n of_o man_n if_o the_o order_n of_o the_o generation_n and_o mutation_n of_o thing_n institute_v in_o nature_n which_o be_v create_v of_o god_n be_v discern_v from_o creation_n object_n 1._o it_o be_v absurd_a say_v the_o philosopher_n to_o imagine_v that_o god_n be_v idle_a ans_fw-fr nay_o rather_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o term_v he_o idle_a who_o administer_v and_o rule_v the_o world_n repl._n this_o i_o grant_v but_o he_o can_v not_o govern_v the_o world_n when_o as_o yet_o the_o world_n be_v not_o
damnation_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o great_a day_n and_o elsewhere_o also_o they_o themselves_o complain_v that_o christ_n come_v to_o torment_v they_o before_o their_o time_n fall_v the_o cause_n why_o god_n permit_v they_o to_o fall_v furthermore_o god_n permit_v they_o to_o fall_v into_o this_o wickedness_n not_o only_o thereby_o to_o show_v his_o wrath_n against_o sin_n in_o their_o everlasting_a pain_n but_o also_o to_o punish_v by_o they_o in_o this_o life_n the_o wicked_a and_o also_o to_o chastise_v or_o try_v and_o exercise_v with_o temptation_n the_o elect_a 78.9_o mat._n 25.41_o 1_o sam._n 16.14_o 23._o psal_n 78.9_o for_o fire_n be_v say_v to_o be_v prepare_v for_o they_o from_o everlasting_a the_o evil_a spirit_n of_o god_n come_v upon_o saul_n and_o vex_v he_o he_o cast_v upon_o the_o egyptian_n the_o fierceness_n of_o his_o anger_n indignation_n and_o wrath_n and_o vexation_n by_o the_o send_n out_o of_o evil_a angel_n but_o 1.12_o job_n 1.12_o job_n be_v deliver_v to_o be_v afflict_v of_o satan_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o his_o constancy_n satan_n have_v desire_v to_o winnow_v you_o as_o wheat_n 12.7_o luke_n 22.31_o 1_o thess_n 2.17_o 2._o cor._n 12.7_o we_o will_v have_v come_v unto_o you_o but_o satan_n hinder_v we_o lest_o i_o shall_v be_v exalt_v above_o measure_n through_o the_o abundance_n of_o revelation_n there_o be_v give_v unto_o i_o a_o prick_n in_o the_o flesh_n the_o messenger_n of_o satan_n to_o buffet_v i_o because_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v exalt_v out_o of_o measure_n 3.5_o 2_o thess_n 3.5_o lest_o the_o tempter_n have_v tempt_v you_o in_o any_o sort_n and_o that_o our_o labour_n have_v be_v in_o vain_a and_o christ_n himself_o be_v tempt_v of_o satan_n 9_o mat._n 4.3_o 6_o 9_o and_o therefore_o very_o he_o be_v call_v the_o tempter_n for_o that_o he_o sollicit_v and_o incit_v man_n to_o sin_n and_o to_o revolt_v from_o god_n both_o by_o offer_v outward_a occasion_n of_o sin_n as_o also_o by_o stir_v up_o the_o cogitation_n and_o inward_a motion_n of_o the_o will_n and_o heart_n sabbath_n on_o the_o 10._o sabbath_n quest_n 27._o what_o be_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n answ_n the_o almighty_a power_n of_o god_n every_o where_o present_a 27._o present_a isa_n 29.15_o 16._o jer._n 23.23_o 24._o ezek._n 8.12_o act._n 17.25_o 27._o whereby_o he_o do_v as_o it_o be_v with_o his_o hand_n uphold_v and_o govern_v heaven_n and_o earth_n with_o all_o the_o creature_n therein_o 1.3_o therein_o heb._n 1.3_o so_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o grow_v in_o the_o earth_n as_o likewise_o rain_n and_o drought_n fruitfulness_n and_o barrenness_n 14.17_o barrenness_n jer._n 5.24_o act_n 14.17_o meat_n and_o drink_n 14.17_o drink_n act_n 14.17_o health_n and_o sickness_n 9.3_o sickness_n john_n 9.3_o riches_n and_o poverty_n 22.2_o poverty_n pro_fw-la 22.2_o in_o a_o word_n all_o thing_n come_v not_o rash_o or_o by_o chance_n but_o by_o his_o fatherly_a counsel_n and_o will_n 10.29_o will_n pro._n 16.33_o matth._n 10.29_o the_o explication_n consideration_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o connexion_n of_o the_o two_o place_n of_o creation_n and_o providence_n providence_n and_o creation_n one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n but_o diverse_a in_o consideration_n the_o doctrine_n which_o treat_v of_o god_n providence_n be_v join_v with_o the_o place_n which_o treat_v of_o the_o creation_n because_o the_o providence_n that_o be_v the_o preservation_n and_o government_n of_o thing_n create_v do_v not_o differ_v from_o the_o creation_n in_o the_o thing_n itself_o for_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o will_v or_o power_n or_o action_n of_o god_n whereby_o thing_n both_o begin_v to_o be_v and_o continue_v but_o they_o differ_v in_o consideration_n only_o for_o the_o omnipotent_a will_n of_o god_n be_v call_v creation_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o beginning_n when_o thing_n by_o the_o force_n and_o power_n of_o his_o will_n take_v their_o be_v it_o be_v call_v providence_n as_o by_o the_o selfsame_a power_n thing_n be_v preserve_v wherefore_o providence_n be_v the_o continuance_n and_o accomplishment_n of_o creation_n or_o creation_n itself_o continuate_v and_o perpetuate_v for_o we_o may_v not_o imagine_v that_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v like_a to_o the_o build_n of_o a_o ship_n which_o the_o shipwright_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v finish_v it_o commit_v to_o the_o government_n of_o some_o pilot_n but_o we_o must_v hold_v this_o as_o a_o ground_a truth_n that_o as_o nothing_o have_v ever_o be_v except_o god_n have_v create_v they_o so_o neither_o can_v they_o retain_v and_o keep_v their_o be_v neither_o their_o force_n of_o work_v neither_o the_o very_a operation_n itself_o or_o motion_n no_o not_o the_o space_n of_o one_o moment_n or_o minute_n of_o time_n if_o god_n do_v not_o preserve_v and_o move_v they_o effectual_o and_o therefore_o the_o scripture_n itself_o often_o join_v the_o preservation_n and_o continual_a administration_n of_o thing_n with_o their_o creation_n and_o from_o hence_o reason_v for_o god_n providence_n and_o god_n be_v call_v jehovah_n creature_n god_n be_v call_v jehovah_n 1._o for_o give_v 2._o for_o maintain_v the_o be_v of_o his_o creature_n not_o only_o because_o he_o once_o give_v to_o every_o thing_n both_o small_a and_o great_a their_o be_v but_o also_o because_o he_o maintain_v it_o in_o all_o and_o move_v they_o so_o as_o that_o he_o not_o only_o seethe_v what_o be_v do_v in_o all_o thing_n but_o also_o cause_v and_o incline_v they_o to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o from_o everlasting_a will_v every_o of_o they_o to_o do_v and_o by_o this_o his_o providence_n he_o govern_v administer_v rule_v and_o preserve_v all_o thing_n that_o they_o be_v not_o bring_v to_o confusion_n we_o can_v therefore_o have_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o the_o creation_n except_o we_o join_v with_o it_o the_o doctrine_n of_o providence_n touch_v providence_n these_o three_o thing_n be_v principal_o question_v 1._o whether_o there_o be_v any_o providence_n 2._o what_o providence_n be_v 3._o why_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o be_v necessary_a the_o two_o former_a of_o these_o be_v discuss_v here_o under_o this_o twenty_o seven_o question_n of_o the_o catechism_n the_o three_o be_v resolve_v in_o the_o twenty_o eight_o question_n immediate_o follow_v 1._o whether_o there_o be_v any_o providence_n of_o god_n providence_n philosopher_n error_n concern_v god_n providence_n concern_v this_o point_n of_o doctrine_n three_o diverse_a erroneous_a opinion_n be_v find_v among_o philosopher_n 1._o the_o epicure_n will_v have_v either_o no_o providence_n at_o all_o or_o only_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v and_o be_v do_v in_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o the_o stoic_n have_v devise_v in_o stead_n of_o providence_n a_o absolute_a necessity_n and_o order_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v in_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o thing_n whereunto_o not_o only_o all_o other_o thing_n but_o god_n himself_o also_o be_v subject_a which_o necessity_n they_o call_v destiny_n 3._o the_o peripatetic_n do_v imagine_v that_o god_n indeed_o do_v behold_v and_o understand_v all_o thing_n but_o yet_o do_v not_o order_n and_o rule_v all_o thing_n but_o move_v the_o celestial_a motion_n and_o do_v by_o they_o send_v down_o by_o way_n of_o influence_n some_o power_n and_o virtue_n unto_o the_o low_a part_n of_o nature_n but_o the_o operation_n themselves_o or_o motion_n depend_v of_o the_o matter_n and_o of_o the_o will_n of_o man_n that_o be_v they_o will_v have_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n to_o be_v a_o prescience_n or_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n but_o not_o a_o will_v decree_a cause_v and_o rule_v all_o thing_n providence_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o church_n touch_v providence_n contrary_o the_o church_n teach_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o nothing_o be_v extant_a and_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o by_o the_o certain_a and_o definite_a though_o yet_o most_o free_a and_o most_o good_a counsel_n and_o purpose_n of_o god_n there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o argument_n and_o proof_n whereby_o be_v confirm_v providence_n two_o proof_n of_o providence_n that_o there_o be_v a_o providence_n of_o god_n testimony_n of_o scripure_a and_o force_v of_o argument_n scripture_n scripture_n testimony_n of_o scripture_n be_v these_o he_o give_v to_o all_o life_n and_o breath_n and_o all_o thing_n 28._o act_n 17.25_o 28._o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v be_v not_o two_o sparrow_n sell_v for_o a_o farthing_n 30._o mat._n 10.29_o 30._o and_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v not_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n without_o your_o father_n yea_o 1.11_o ephes_n 1.11_o and_o all_o the_o hair_n of_o your_o head_n be_v number_v god_n work_v all_o thing_n after_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o own_o will_n like_o to_o these_o be_v find_v infinite_a testimony_n in_o
jerem._n 32.19_o &_o 50.45_o act_n 2.23_o ephes_n 1.11_o the_o explication_n and_o confirmation_n of_o each_o part_n of_o this_o definition_n several_o counsel_n the_o providence_n of_o god_n be_v call_v in_o scripture_n the_o counsel_n of_o god_n the_o counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o my_o counsel_n shall_v stand_v god_n willing_a to_o show_v the_o stableness_n of_o his_o counsel_n out_o of_o these_o testimony_n it_o be_v clear_a and_o apparent_a that_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v by_o the_o name_n of_o providence_n not_o only_o the_o bare_a science_n or_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n present_a and_o to_o come_v but_o also_o the_o decree_n and_o effectual_a will_n of_o god_n for_o the_o name_n of_o counsel_n comprehend_v both_o to_o wit_n a_o understanding_n or_o prescience_n and_o before_o knowledge_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v or_o to_o be_v do_v and_o of_o the_o cause_n for_o which_o they_o be_v decree_n two_o part_n of_o god_n providence_n 1._o his_o knowledge_n 2._o his_o decree_n or_o be_v not_o to_o be_v do_v likewise_o a_o will_n effect_v or_o work_v a_o thing_n for_o certain_a cause_n and_o that_o in_o due_a time_n and_o order_n providence_n therefore_o be_v not_o the_o bare_a foreseeing_a or_o fore_a knowledge_n but_o the_o foreknowledge_n together_o with_o the_o will_n of_o god_n even_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o translate_v providence_n signify_v with_o the_o greek_n both_o a_o knowledge_n and_o a_o care_n of_o thing_n eternal_a 2._o eternal_a eternal_a because_o see_v neither_o the_o ignorance_n of_o any_o thing_n nor_o increase_v of_o knowledge_n or_o change_v of_o wil●_n fall_v into_o god_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o know_v and_o decree_v all_o thing_n from_o everlasting_a the_o lord_n have_v possess_v i_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o way_n 2.7_o prov._n 8.22_o isa_n 40.10_o ephes_n 1.4_o 1_o cor._n 2.7_o which_o declare_v the_o last_o thing_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o from_o old_a the_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o do_v he_o have_v choose_v we_o in_o christ_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n we_o speak_v the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v determine_v before_o the_o world_n free_a 3._o most_o free_a most_o free_a that_o be_v a_o decree_n which_o be_v make_v from_o everlasting_a of_o all_o thing_n and_o event_n as_o it_o please_v he_o of_o his_o great_a wisdom_n and_o goodness_n when_o he_o have_v perfect_a power_n otherwise_o to_o have_v direct_v his_o counsel_n or_o else_o to_o have_v omit_v it_o or_o to_o have_v thing_n otherwise_o then_o he_o decree_v to_o do_v they_o by_o his_o counsel_n 18.6_o psal_n 115.3_o jer._n 18.6_o he_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o will_n as_o the_o clay_n be_v in_o the_o potter_n hand_n so_o be_v you_o in_o my_o hand_n 3.6_o 4._o unchangeable_n 1_o sam._n 15.29_o malac._n 3.6_o unchangeable_n because_o neither_o error_n of_o counsel_n nor_o any_o change_n or_o mutation_n fall_v into_o god_n but_o what_o he_o have_v once_o decree_v from_o everlasting_a that_o as_o be_v most_o good_a and_o right_n do_v he_o will_v everlasting_o and_o at_o length_n bring_v to_o pass_v the_o strength_n of_o israel_n will_v not_o lie_v nor_o repent_v i_o be_o the_o lord_n i_o change_v not_o so_o numb_a 33.10_o job_n 23.13_o psal_n 33.13_o prov._n 19.21_o isa_n 14.24_o 25_o 26_o 27._o &_o 46.10_o ezek._n 12.28_o james_n 1.17_o rom._n 11.29_o heb._n 6.17_o 12.13_o 5._o most_o wise_a job_n 12.13_o most_o wise_a this_o be_v show_v both_o by_o the_o wonderful_a course_n of_o thing_n and_o event_n in_o the_o world_n and_o by_o the_o scripture_n itself_o with_o he_o be_v wisdom_n and_o strength_n he_o have_v counsel_n and_o understanding_n 11.33_o rom._n 11.33_o o_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n so_o 1_o sam._n 16.7_o 1_o king_n 8.39_o 1_o chro._n 28.9_o psal_n 33.11_o job_n 36.23_o psal_n 33.15_o &_o 139.1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6._o &_o 147.5_o prov._n 8.30_o just_a 6._o most_o just_a most_o just_a because_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a fountain_n and_o the_o chief_a rule_n of_o justice_n and_o be_v manifest_v and_o declare_v in_o the_o law_n whatsoever_o therefore_o god_n will_v or_o have_v decree_v or_o do_v work_v it_o be_v simple_o and_o in_o itself_o just_a whether_o we_o know_v or_o not_o know_v the_o manner_n 17.2_o 2_o chron_n 17.2_o how_o it_o be_v just_a there_o be_v no_o iniquity_n with_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n neither_o respect_n of_o person_n so_o nehem._n 9.33_o job_n 9.2_o psalm_n 36.7_o &_o 119.137_o daniel_n 9.7_o 14._o work_v 7._o effectual_a in_o work_v whereby_o god_n work_v this_o be_v add_v that_o we_o may_v know_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n not_o to_o be_v idle_a but_o effectual_a and_o forcible_a in_o work_v for_o god_n not_o only_o once_o create_v thing_n and_o bestow_v on_o they_o a_o virtue_n and_o force_n whereby_o to_o work_v but_o also_o do_v preserve_v and_o move_v by_o his_o presence_n and_o continual_a work_n all_o thing_n at_o his_o pleasure_n 17._o john_n 5_o 17._o according_a as_o christ_n speak_v my_o father_n work_v hitherto_o and_o i_o work_v no_o creature_n whether_o great_a or_o small_a can_v either_o be_v or_o move_v or_o do_v or_o suffer_v any_o thing_n 17.28_o act_n 17.28_o except_o god_n effectual_o preserve_v move_v and_o govern_v it_o in_o he_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o be_v and_o god_n work_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o sole_a and_o eternal_a will_n without_o any_o labour_n or_o motion_n for_o to_o will_v in_o he_o be_v both_o to_o be_v able_a and_o to_o do_v and_o contrary_o his_o power_n and_o action_n be_v his_o very_a eternal_a and_o unchangeable_a will_n for_o in_o god_n the_o will_n be_v not_o disjoined_n from_o his_o efficacy_n and_o work_n as_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v in_o creature_n the_o work_n or_o operation_n of_o god_n be_v twofold_a general_a god_n the_o general_a and_o special_a work_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o sustain_v and_o govern_v all_o thing_n especial_o mankind_n special_a whereby_o he_o begin_v the_o salvation_n of_o his_o choose_a in_o this_o life_n and_o perfect_v it_o in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v god_n 1_o tim._n 4.10_o rom._n 8.14_o psal_n 33.16_o the_o immediate_a work_n of_o god_n god_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o all_o man_n especial_o of_o those_o that_o believe_v as_o many_o as_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o eye_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v over_o the_o righteous_a another_o division_n there_o be_v of_o god_n work_v whereby_o it_o be_v divide_v into_o immediate_a and_o mediate_a work_n immediate_n work_v be_v when_o beside_o or_o contrary_a to_o the_o mean_n and_o order_n settle_v by_o he_o in_o nature_n he_o work_v what_o he_o will_v as_o in_o all_o miracle_n which_o be_v describe_v and_o declare_v to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v learn_v that_o god_n do_v work_v most_o free_o either_o by_o mean_n or_o without_o they_o for_o that_o all_o those_o miracle_n be_v not_o wrought_v without_o divine_a power_n both_o experience_n teach_v we_o inasmuch_o as_o they_o can_v be_v wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o any_o creature_n and_o the_o scripture_n witness_v 38.1_o psal_n 136.4_o exod._n 8.19_o god_n mediate_a work_n deut._n 8.3_o isa_n 38.21_o syrac_n 38.1_o as_o which_o only_o do_v great_a wonder_n this_o be_v the_o finger_n of_o god_n mediate_v work_v be_v when_o god_n by_o creature_n or_o second_o cause_n produce_v those_o effect_n to_o which_o those_o creature_n or_o cause_n be_v by_o the_o accustom_a and_o common_a order_n of_o nature_n fit_a and_o so_o make_v of_o god_n as_o when_o he_o sustain_v we_o by_o nourishment_n and_o drive_v away_o disease_n by_o medicine_n take_v a_o lump_n of_o dry_a fig_n and_o lay_v it_o upon_o the_o boil_v and_o he_o shall_v recover_v so_o likewise_o god_n by_o his_o word_n write_v read_v hear_v show_v unto_o we_o both_o his_o will_n and_o himself_o 16.26_o luke_n 16.26_o they_o have_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n let_v they_o hear_v they_o moreover_o the_o mediate_a work_n or_o action_n of_o god_n be_v do_v sometime_o by_o good_a bad_a his_o mediate_a work_n sometime_o by_o good_a mean_n sometime_o by_o bad_a sometime_o by_o vicious_a and_o sinful_a instrument_n as_o well_o natural_a as_o voluntary_a yet_o so_o that_o the_o work_n of_o god_n in_o they_o and_o by_o they_o be_v always_o most_o good_a most_o just_a and_o most_o holy_a for_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n work_n depend_v not_o upon_o the_o goodness_n wisdom_n and_o rightnesse_n of_o the_o instrument_n but_o of_o god_n as_o touch_v good_a instrument_n that_o by_o they_o god_n work_v very_o well_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n among_o the_o godly_a but_o of_o evil_a instrument_n all_o think_v not_o the_o same_o
nevertheless_o yet_o except_o we_o will_v deny_v 1._o the_o trial_n and_o chastisement_n of_o the_o godly_a or_o 2._o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o wicked_a both_o to_o be_v just_a and_o to_o proceed_v from_o the_o will_n power_n and_o efficacy_n of_o god_n as_o also_o 3._o the_o virtue_n and_o such_o action_n and_o deed_n of_o the_o wicked_a as_o have_v be_v for_o the_o safety_n of_o mankind_n to_o be_v the_o gift_n and_o blessing_n of_o god_n that_o be_v except_o we_o will_v deny_v that_o god_n be_v a_o just_a judge_n of_o the_o world_n and_o powerful_a in_o operation_n and_o the_o efficient_a of_o all_o good_a thing_n we_o must_v needs_o doubtless_o confess_v that_o god_n do_v also_o execute_v and_o accomplish_v his_o just_a and_o holy_a work_n and_o judgement_n by_o evil_a and_o sinful_a instrument_n 16.12_o gen._n 37_o 28._o num_fw-la 23.8_o deut._n 13.3_o 1_o sam._n 16.14_o 2_o sam_n 15.12_o &_o 16.12_o so_o god_n send_v joseph_n into_o egypt_n by_o his_o wicked_a brethren_n and_o the_o midianite_n bless_v israel_n by_o balaam_n tempt_v the_o people_n by_o false_a prophet_n vex_v saul_n by_o satan_n punish_v david_n by_o absalon_n and_o by_o the_o curse_n of_o shemei_n solomon_n by_o rebellious_a jeroboam_n roboam_n by_o the_o traitorous_a people_n of_o israel_n tri_v job_n by_o satan_n and_o the_o chaldee_n 6.15_o 1_o king_n 11.31_o &_o 22.15_o job_n 1._o &_o 2._o 1_o chron._n 6.15_o carry_v away_o into_o captivity_n judah_n and_o jerusalem_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o nabuchadnezzar_n god_n all_o good_a thing_n do_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n he_o work_v all_o good_a thing_n even_o in_o all_o creature_n both_o great_a and_o small_a he_o work_v good_a thing_n so_o that_o not_o only_o he_o do_v engender_v and_o preserve_v in_o they_o a_o general_a power_n and_o force_v of_o work_v but_o do_v also_o effectual_o move_v they_o so_o that_o without_o his_o will_n be_v effectual_a and_o work_a that_o power_n and_o force_n never_o in_o any_o thing_n show_v forth_o itself_o or_o be_v bring_v into_o act_n that_o be_v not_o only_o all_o force_n of_o work_v but_o also_o the_o act_n and_o operation_n itself_o be_v in_o all_o creature_n from_o god_n as_o the_o efficient_a thereof_o and_o direct_a for_o by_o the_o name_n of_o good_a be_v understand_v good_a what_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v good_a 1._o the_o substance_n and_o nature_n of_o thing_n 2._o their_o quantity_n and_o quality_n force_n or_o power_n or_o inclination_n 3._o habit_n and_o faculty_n of_o the_o mind_n conform_v to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n 4._o motion_n action_n and_o event_n as_o they_o be_v motion_n and_o agree_v with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 5._o punishment_n as_o they_o be_v the_o execution_n of_o god_n justice_n be_v inflict_v by_o god_n the_o most_o just_a and_o righteous_a judge_n of_o the_o world_n all_o these_o since_o they_o be_v either_o thing_n create_v of_o god_n or_o something_o ordain_v by_o he_o and_o agree_v with_o his_o divine_a law_n and_o justice_n they_o must_v needs_o partake_v both_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o good_a and_o proceed_v from_o their_o efficient_a and_o by_o his_o providence_n continue_v and_o be_v direct_v thing_n god_n permit_v evil_a thing_n 9_o he_o permit_v also_o evil_a thing_n to_o be_v do_v evil_n be_v twofold_a the_o one_o of_o crime_n or_o offence_n which_o be_v sin_n the_o other_o of_o pain_n or_o punishment_n which_o be_v every_o destruction_n or_o affliction_n or_o forsake_v of_o the_o reasonable_a creature_n inflict_v by_o god_n for_o sin_n example_n of_o each_o signification_n and_o meaning_n be_v if_o this_o nation_n 18.8_o jerem._n 18.8_o against_o who_o i_o have_v pronounce_v turn_v from_o their_o wickedness_n i_o will_v repent_v of_o the_o plague_n that_o i_o think_v to_o bring_v upon_o they_o but_o now_o because_o the_o evil_a of_o pain_n or_o punishment_n cause_n the_o evil_a of_o punishment_n be_v a_o moral_a good_a and_o be_v do_v by_o god_n for_o three_o cause_n be_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o law_n and_o declaration_n of_o god_n justice_n be_v indeed_o natural_o evil_a as_o it_o be_v a_o destruction_n of_o the_o creature_n but_o be_v in_o a_o consideration_n a_o moral_a good_a as_o it_o be_v agree_v with_o the_o order_n of_o god_n justice_n this_o sort_n of_o evil_n also_o not_o only_o as_o it_o be_v a_o action_n or_o motion_n but_o also_o as_o it_o be_v a_o destruction_n or_o affliction_n of_o sinner_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o god_n as_o author_n and_o efficient_a thereof_o 1._o because_o he_o be_v the_o first_o cause_n and_o efficient_a of_o all_o good_a thing_n now_o all_o evil_a of_o punishment_n or_o pain_n as_o it_o be_v a_o punishment_n do_v partake_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o moral_a good_a because_o the_o law_n and_o order_n of_o god_n justice_n require_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n and_o they_o be_v the_o execution_n or_o declaration_n of_o god_n justice_n therefore_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o punishment_n 2._o because_o it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o judge_n to_o punish_v sin_n and_o because_o god_n be_v judge_n of_o the_o world_n and_o will_v be_v acknowledge_v the_o maintainer_n of_o his_o justice_n and_o glory_n 19.6_o 2_o chron._n 19.6_o you_o execute_v not_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n but_o of_o the_o lord_n 3._o because_o the_o whole_a scripture_n with_o great_a consent_n refer_v both_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o chastisement_n and_o exercise_n and_o martyrdom_n of_o the_o godly_a as_o also_o the_o passion_n and_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o which_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o man_n to_o the_o effectual_a and_o forcible_a work_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n as_o there_o be_v no_o evil_n to_o wit_n 3.6_o amos_n 3.6_o of_o punishment_n in_o the_o city_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o do_v i_o the_o lord_n make_v peace_n and_o create_v evil_a 45.7_o isa_n 45.7_o wherefore_o we_o account_v in_o the_o number_n of_o good_a thing_n the_o punishment_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o god_n judgement_n which_o god_n not_o only_o by_o his_o unchangeable_a decree_n will_v have_v do_v but_o also_o do_v they_o by_o his_o effectual_a power_n and_o will_n for_o although_o the_o destruction_n be_v evil_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o creature_n who_o suffer_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v good_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o law_n and_o order_n of_o divine_a justice_n exact_v it_o and_o in_o respect_n of_o god_n most_o just_o inflict_v it_o and_o execute_v as_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a work_n of_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o world_n object_n 1._o god_n make_v not_o death_n answ_n true_o not_o before_o sin_n 1.13_o wisd_v 1.13_o when_o he_o create_v all_o thing_n object_n 2._o thy_o destruction_n be_v of_o thyself_o israel_n ans_fw-fr true_o 13.9_o hos_fw-la 13.9_o as_o concern_v the_o desert_n but_o as_o concern_v the_o effect_n or_o inflict_v of_o their_o punishment_n it_o be_v from_o god_n object_n 3._o he_o will_v not_o death_n ans_fw-fr death_n ezek._n 18.13_o &_o 33.11_o god_n will_n and_o will_v not_o death_n he_o will_v not_o death_n with_o a_o desire_n of_o destroy_v or_o that_o he_o delight_v in_o the_o destruction_n vexation_n or_o perdition_n of_o his_o creature_n neither_o will_v he_o it_o or_o will_v effect_v or_o cause_v it_o if_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o destruction_n and_o perdition_n but_o he_o will_v it_o and_o work_v it_o and_o delight_v in_o it_o as_o it_o be_v the_o punishment_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o execution_n of_o his_o justice_n 1.26_o isa_n 1.24_o psalm_n 2.4_o prov._n 1.26_o or_o the_o delivery_n of_o his_o church_n or_o a_o chastisement_n or_o trial_n or_o martyrdom_n or_o ransom_n obj._n 4._o he_o will_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v 1_o tim._n 2.2_o 4._o 2_o pet._n 3.9_o ans_fw-fr all_o man_n that_o be_v all_o sort_n of_o man_n for_o out_o of_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n he_o choose_v his_o choose_a now_o 1.13_o evil_n of_o crime_n as_o it_o be_v such_o god_n do_v only_o permit_v and_o not_o will_n james_n 1.13_o of_o evil_n of_o crime_n or_o offence_n there_o be_v another_o consideration_n for_o these_o as_o they_o be_v sin_n or_o evil_n of_o crime_n be_v not_o consider_v as_o good_a and_o saint_n james_n say_v of_o they_o let_v no_o man_n when_o he_o be_v tempt_v that_o be_v when_o he_o be_v solicit_v to_o evil_a say_v that_o he_o be_v tempt_v of_o god_n therefore_o god_n neither_o intend_v they_o in_o his_o counsel_n and_o purpose_n neither_o allow_v nor_o work_v nor_o further_v but_o only_o suffer_v or_o permit_v they_o to_o be_v do_v of_o devil_n and_o man_n that_o be_v do_v not_o hinder_v they_o from_o be_v do_v when_o yet_o he_o can_v hinder_v they_o partly_o to_o show_v in_o
seed_n of_o abraham_n god_n be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n every_o spirit_n that_o confess_v not_o that_o christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o of_o god_n no_o man_n ascend_v up_o to_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o descend_v from_o heaven_n the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n for_o this_o cause_n be_o i_o bear_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n come_v i_o into_o the_o world_n forasmach_n as_o the_o child_n be_v partaker_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n he_o also_o himself_o likewise_o take_v part_n with_o they_o before_o abraham_n be_v i_o be_o therefore_o it_o be_v one_o nature_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o flesh_n take_v flesh_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o come_v into_o this_o world_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o be_v before_o abraham_n and_o another_o nature_n which_o be_v assume_v or_o take_v into_o which_o the_o former_a come_v and_o in_o which_o it_o appear_v for_o the_o assumer_n and_o the_o assume_v be_v not_o all_o one_o flesh_n the_o word_n take_v flesh_n whereas_o then_o the_o word_n take_v humane_a nature_n he_o must_v needs_o be_v other_o from_o it_o who_o both_o be_v before_o the_o flesh_n take_v and_o be_v not_o convert_v or_o change_v into_o it_o but_o have_v a_o subsistence_n divers_a and_o distinct_a from_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v assume_v the_o argument_n be_v thus_o frame_v the_o assumer_n be_v before_o that_o which_o be_v assume_v but_o of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o assume_v or_o take_v flesh_n that_o he_o be_v make_v flesh_n therefore_o the_o son_n the_o word_n be_v before_o the_o flesh_n he_o assume_v the_o major_n be_v manifest_a the_o minor_a be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o fore-alledged_n authority_n hitherto_o also_o belong_v all_o those_o testimony_n which_o oppose_v in_o christ_n his_o divine_a nature_n which_o do_v assume_v to_o his_o humane_a nature_n or_o flesh_n 9.5_o rom._n ●_o 3_o &_o 9.5_o which_o be_v assume_v and_o distinguish_v that_o from_o this_o as_o his_o son_n make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o father_n concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v therefore_o there_o be_v another_o thing_n in_o christ_n beside_o his_o flesh_n according_a to_o which_o he_o be_v not_o of_o the_o father_n nor_o of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n take_v on_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n 2.6_o phil._n 2.6_o wherefore_o the_o form_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v one_o thing_n namely_o his_o divinity_n most_o perfect_a and_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n another_o thing_n even_o of_o his_o humanity_n weak_a base_a and_o servile_a christ_n be_v call_v the_o son_n and_o lord_n of_o david_n therefore_o there_o be_v divers_a nature_n in_o he_o 2.19_o mat._n 22.44_o john_n 2.19_o destroy_v this_o temple_n and_o in_o three_o day_n i_o will_v raise_v it_o up_o again_o wherefore_o there_o be_v one_o thing_n in_o christ_n which_o be_v destroy_v even_o his_o body_n and_o another_o thing_n likewise_o which_o raise_v up_o his_o destroy_a body_n which_o be_v the_o word_n 1.18_o john_n 1.18_o who_o be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n object_n 1._o the_o word_n in_o john_n do_v not_o signify_v any_o person_n which_o be_v subsist_v before_o the_o flesh_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n flesh_n that_o john_n mean_v by_o the_o word_n a_o person_n subsist_v before_o the_o flesh_n but_o only_o that_o visible_a preacher_n or_o teacher_n jesus_n who_o be_v make_v flesh_n that_o be_v be_v a_o man_n mortal_a weak_a miserable_a and_o abject_a answ_n this_o be_v a_o notorious_a manifest_a and_o impudent_a corrupt_v of_o this_o place_n for_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o any_o man_n to_o show_v out_o of_o the_o very_a narration_n of_o john_n that_o the_o word_n signify_v a_o hypostasis_fw-la or_o person_n which_o be_v exist_v before_o jesus_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n for_o the_o word_n 1._o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o be_v be_v now_o before_o exist_v when_o thing_n be_v create_v 2._o and_o that_o word_n be_v god_n 3._o by_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v 4._o who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o life_n and_o light_n therefore_o he_o be_v a_o person_n exist_v before_o all_o thing_n 5._o which_o lighten_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o be_v all_z if_o not_o with_o spiritual_a yet_o with_o natural_a light_n therefore_o he_o be_v their_o illuminatour_n who_o be_v before_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n 6._o who_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o not_o know_v 7._o yet_o come_v unto_o his_o own_o 8._o be_v make_v flesh_n that_o be_v assume_v and_o take_v humane_a nature_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n for_o that_o these_o word_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n have_v this_o meaning_n flesh_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n by_o take_v flesh_n not_o by_o any_o conversion_n into_o flesh_n namely_o that_o he_o who_o now_o from_o the_o beginning_n be_v in_o the_o world_n be_v make_v flesh_n that_o be_v man_n which_o before_o he_o be_v not_o not_o by_o any_o change_n or_o mutation_n of_o himself_o but_o by_o assume_v and_o take_v humane_a nature_n other_o place_n of_o scripture_n do_v demonstrate_v he_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o flesh_n he_o take_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n god_n be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n the_o word_n therefore_o assume_v and_o take_v flesh_n 3.16_o heb._n 2.14_o 1_o tim._n 3.16_o but_o be_v not_o convert_v into_o flesh_n that_o be_v the_o divine_a nature_n be_v distinct_a from_o the_o flesh_n take_v and_o assume_v moreover_o that_o christ_n man_n be_v such_o a_o teacher_n 6.51_o the_o word_n be_v a_o teacher_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n john_n 1.9_o 18._o &_o 6.51_o who_o not_o only_o in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o flesh_n but_o also_o before_o that_o be_v bear_v even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n preach_v the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n unto_o man_n and_o quicken_v they_o both_o this_o very_a narration_n of_o john_n and_o other_o very_a many_o place_n do_v plain_o show_v he_o be_v the_o life_n and_o the_o true_a light_n which_o lighten_v every_o man_n no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o i_o be_o the_o live_a bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_z giveth_z life_n unto_o the_o world_n christ_n go_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o day_n of_o noah_n and_o preach_v unto_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o prison_n 3.19_o 1_o pet._n 3.19_o which_o be_v in_o time_n pass_v disobedient_a object_n 2._o christ_n man_n be_v and_o be_v call_v god_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n therefore_o they_o corrupt_v the_o scripture_n who_o say_v that_o in_o this_o visible_a man_n jesus_n be_v beside_o the_o flesh_n a_o invisible_a nature_n which_o be_v exist_v also_o in_o the_o old_a people_n time_n without_o flesh_n for_o to_o say_v this_o be_v as_o if_o a_o man_n instead_o of_o this_o thou_o be_v a_o scholar_n shall_v say_v in_o thou_o be_v a_o scholar_n answ_n that_o christ_n man_n be_v true_a and_o by_o nature_n god_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o nature_n or_o essence_n of_o the_o godhead_n in_o he_o personal_o unite_v to_o his_o manhood_n testimony_n 1._o prove_v by_o testimony_n be_v no_o corruption_n but_o the_o very_a voice_n mind_n meaning_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o he_o that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o god_n head_n that_o be_v 2.9_o col._n 2.9_o the_o very_a full_a and_o perfect_a godhead_n which_o be_v but_o one_o bodily_a that_o be_v personal_o or_o substantial_o so_o that_o it_o be_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o visible_a man_n christ_n in_o christ_n therefore_o there_o be_v one_o thing_n which_o dwell_v namely_o the_o godhead_n another_o thing_n in_o which_o it_o dwell_v even_o the_o manhood_n which_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o god_n head_n and_o be_v shadow_v and_o figure_v by_o the_o mosaical_a tabernacle_n christ_n say_v of_o himself_o destroy_v this_o temple_n 10.20_o john_n 2.19_o 21._o he._n 9_o 11._o &_o 10.20_o and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n mention_v the_o tabernacle_n of_o the_o humane_a nature_n and_o call_v the_o flesh_n a_o veil_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o godhead_n he_o suffer_v in_o the_o flesh_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o come_v unto_o his_o own_o 1.3_o rom._n 1.3_o therefore_o there_o must_v be_v in_o the_o flesh_n another_o nature_n again_o make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n 2.6_o phil._n 2.6_o and_o declare_v mighty_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n touch_v the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n again_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n and_o
our_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o may_v loose_v the_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n 3.5_o 1_o john_n 3.5_o therefore_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o another_o nature_n from_o the_o flesh_n that_o be_v the_o man_n jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o respect_n not_o only_o of_o his_o humanity_n but_o also_o of_o his_o divinity_n which_o beside_o and_o before_o the_o flesh_n exi_v in_o he_o and_o by_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v make_v as_o it_o be_v visible_a and_o conspicuous_a wherefore_o it_o follow_v also_o and_o that_o necessary_o that_o that_o be_v a_o subsistent_a and_o a_o person_n for_o that_o which_o be_v by_o nature_n a_o son_n be_v also_o a_o person_n but_o christ_n divinity_n or_o nature_n which_o be_v also_o before_o his_o flesh_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o nature_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o subsistent_n and_o a_o person_n in_o the_o flesh_n take_v or_o assume_v and_o before_o it_o son_n 5._o class_n the_o word_n be_v a_o person_n before_o jesus_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o he_o be_v the_o son_n to_o the_o five_o class_n belong_v those_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o affirm_v christ_n man_n to_o be_v the_o word_n incarnate_a the_o argument_n be_v this_o the_o word_n be_v a_o person_n which_o both_o existed_a before_o jesus_n be_v bear_v and_o now_o dwell_v personal_o in_o the_o flesh_n take_v of_o the_o virgin_n but_o that_o word_n be_v the_o son_n therefore_o the_o son_n be_v a_o person_n beside_o and_o before_o the_o assumption_n of_o flesh_n the_o major_n be_v prove_v 1._o because_o those_o thing_n be_v attribute_v unto_o the_o word_n which_o only_o agree_v to_o a_o thing_n subsistent_a live_a intelligent_a work_v that_o be_v to_o a_o person_n for_o the_o word_n be_v before_o all_o creature_n with_o the_o father_n god_n by_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n make_v 19_o john_n 1._o 1_o john_n 1_o &_o 5._o rev._n 19_o he_o be_v author_n of_o life_n and_o light_n in_o man_n he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o not_o know_v he_o have_v his_o own_o country_n and_o nation_n he_o come_v unto_o it_o in_o his_o name_n man_n believe_v he_o give_v power_n to_o other_o to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n and_o power_n he_o do_v assume_v and_o take_v flesh_n and_o be_v therein_o manifest_v see_v handle_v converse_v and_o dwell_v among_o man_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v 2.18_o john_n 14.18_o 34._o rev._n 2.18_o 1._o because_o the_o word_n be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n 2._o because_o the_o same_o property_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o word_n and_o the_o son_n for_o the_o son_n be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n reveal_v god_n unto_o man_n by_o he_o the_o world_n be_v create_v in_o he_o be_v life_n he_o be_v send_v and_o come_v from_o heaven_n into_o the_o world_n he_o take_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n likewise_o the_o life_n which_o be_v the_o word_n be_v with_o the_o father_n before_o the_o incarnation_n and_o manifestation_n of_o christ_n therefore_o god_n be_v even_o then_o the_o father_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o see_v the_o new_a arrian_n do_v marvellous_o deprave_v by_o their_o new_a and_o crafty_a devise_v sophism_n this_o notable_a place_n of_o john_n concern_v the_o word_n subsist_v before_o the_o flesh_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n and_o create_v and_o preserve_v all_o thing_n that_o thereby_o they_o may_v rob_v and_o despoil_v the_o son_n of_o god_n of_o his_o true_a and_o eternal_a deity_n it_o seem_v good_a here_o to_o adjoyne_v those_o thing_n which_o zacharias_n ursinus_n some_o year_n since_o note_v and_o draw_v out_o as_o to_o be_v oppose_v against_o these_o corruption_n and_o forgery_n brief_o indeed_o and_o bare_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o logician_n yet_o such_o as_o be_v learned_a and_o sound_a whereby_o also_o the_o like_a corruption_n and_o wrest_n of_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n may_v easy_o be_v observe_v discern_v and_o refute_v john_n purpose_v to_o write_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o first_o entrance_n propose_v the_o sum_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o he_o purpose_v to_o deliver_v and_o confirm_v out_o of_o the_o story_n and_o sermon_n of_o christ_n gospel_n the_o argument_n of_o john_n gospel_n and_o see_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n consist_v in_o his_o person_n and_o office_n he_o describe_v both_o and_o show_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o eternal_a son_n and_o word_n of_o god_n the_o father_n who_o take_v flesh_n be_v make_v man_n that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v a_o sacrifice_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o may_v make_v we_o through_o faith_n in_o he_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o heir_n of_o eternal_a life_n this_o word_n then_o who_o afterward_o he_o call_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o the_o father_n he_o say_v now_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o beginning_n which_o show_v his_o eternity_n be_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v these_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a evangelist_n they_o corrupt_v and_o deprave_v who_o raise_v again_o samosatenus_fw-la his_o blasphemy_n from_o the_o pit_n of_o hell_n expound_v this_o beginning_n of_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o gospel_n preach_v do_v by_o christ_n but_o contrary_a saint_n john_n and_o the_o church_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o scholar_n time_n do_v understand_v that_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n wherein_o moses_n recount_v all_o thing_n to_o have_v be_v first_o create_v by_o god_n 1._o gen._n 1._o for_o john_n say_v that_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o further_o that_o even_o then_o in_o the_o beginning_n he_o be_v god_n and_o that_o the_o true_a god_n creator_n which_o be_v only_o one_o and_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n repl._n 1_o begin_v do_v not_o signify_v eternity_n therefore_o you_o deprave_v it_o who_o so_o expound_v it_o answ_n we_o do_v not_o so_o expound_v it_o but_o that_o even_o then_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n be_v the_o word_n and_o therefore_o be_v before_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v before_o this_o be_v from_o everlasting_a and_o so_o be_v the_o scripture_n wont_a to_o speak_v as_o eph._n 1.4_o 1_o pet._n 1.20_o pro._n 8.22_o 23._o etc._n etc._n where_o we_o may_v see_v a_o large_a place_n concern_v wisdom_n who_o eternity_n be_v there_o signify_v in_o this_o that_o it_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v before_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n repl._n 2._o begin_v often_o signify_v the_o beginning_n of_o the_o gospel_n preach_v you_o be_v with_o i_o from_o the_o beginning_n i_o say_v not_o to_o you_o from_o the_o beginning_n ans_fw-fr this_o show_v that_o sometime_o it_o so_o signify_v but_o not_o always_o and_o we_o be_v still_o to_o construe_v it_o of_o that_o beginning_n which_o the_o text_n show_v as_o also_o in_o other_o place_n i_o be_o α_n and_o ω_fw-gr ●_o rev._n 1._o ●_o the_o begin_n and_o the_o end_n the_o first_o and_o the_o last_o the_o word_n the_o corrupter_n say_v the_o man_n christ_n be_v call_v the_o word_n because_o he_o speak_v and_o teach_v the_o will_n of_o the_o father_n we_o say_v that_o he_o be_v call_v indeed_o the_o word_n for_o this_o cause_n because_o he_o declare_v god_n and_o his_o will_n but_o yet_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o divinity_n not_o of_o his_o humanity_n the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v 1._o because_o his_o humanity_n be_v not_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o because_o this_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n that_o be_v take_v on_o he_o humane_a nature_n 3._o because_o this_o word_n do_v lighten_v all_o man_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n whosoever_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o how_o much_o soever_o they_o have_v he_o be_v the_o life_n and_o the_o light_n of_o man_n lightning_n every_o man_n which_o come_v into_o the_o world_n no_o man_n have_v know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o repl._n 1_o it_o be_v say_v now_o god_n have_v speak_v unto_o we_o by_o his_o son_n 1.1_o heb._n 1.1_o ans_fw-fr that_o be_v by_o his_o son_n make_v man_n repl._n 2._o he_o be_v not_o say_v any_o where_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o have_v speak_v ans_fw-fr yes_o by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o also_o himself_o be_v lord_n 6.9_o esay_n 6.9_o likewise_o the_o lord_n appear_v speak_v who_o saint_n john_n affirm_v to_o have_v be_v christ_n 12.40_o john_n 12.40_o repl._n 3_o the_o word_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v palpable_a visible_a and_o so_o forth_o answ_n that_o be_v 1_o 1_o john_n 1_o by_o reason_n of_o
work_n of_o both_o creation_n whatsoever_o thing_n the_o father_n do_v the_o same_o thing_n do_v the_o son_n also_o the_o father_n show_v he_o all_o thing_n whatsoever_o he_o himself_o do_v therefore_o not_o only_o the_o work_n of_o the_o second_o creation_n but_o also_o of_o the_o first_o creation_n preservation_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o same_o place_n it_o be_v say_v as_o the_o father_n quicken_v so_o the_o son_n quicken_v who_o he_o will_v but_o the_o father_n be_v from_o the_o very_a beginning_n the_o giver_n of_o corporal_a and_o spiritual_a life_n by_o he_o be_v all_o thing_n create_v which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o which_o be_v on_o earth_n thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a whether_o they_o be_v throne_n 17._o co●_n 1.16_o 17._o or_o dominion_n or_o principality_n or_o power_n all_o thing_n be_v create_v by_o he_o and_o for_o he_o and_o he_o be_v before_o all_o thing_n and_o in_o he_o all_o thing_n consist_v thus_o far_o of_o the_o first_o creation_n that_o which_o follow_v speak_v of_o the_o second_o creation_n repl._n 1_o all_o these_o speak_v of_o the_o instauration_n of_o the_o church_n ans_fw-fr no_o because_o that_o comprehend_v also_o the_o angel_n repl._n 2._o the_o angel_n also_o be_v restore_v by_o christ_n and_o join_v to_o their_o head_n ans_fw-fr but_o the_o new_a creation_n be_v call_v a_o restore_n from_o sin_n and_o death_n to_o righteousness_n and_o life_n this_o agree_v not_o to_o the_o angel_n repl._n 3_o by_o who_o also_o he_o make_v the_o world_n 1.2_o heb._n 1.2_o the_o world_n that_o be_v the_o new_a church_n ans_fw-fr 1._o god_n make_v the_o old_a also_o by_o he_o because_o it_o be_v one_o church_n have_v one_o head_n and_o foundation_n 2._o the_o greek_a word_n '_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o be_v use_v in_o that_o place_n signify_v in_o scripture_n the_o world_n not_o the_o church_n and_o further_o when_o it_o be_v there_o add_v bear_v up_o all_o thing_n by_o his_o mighty_a word_n those_o word_n speak_v of_o the_o preservation_n not_o only_o of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o all_o thing_n and_o moreover_o he_o render_v a_o cause_n why_o he_o be_v the_o heir_n not_o only_o of_o the_o church_n but_o of_o all_o creature_n namely_o because_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n and_o preserver_n of_o all_o thing_n thou_o lord_n in_o the_o begin_n have_v establish_v the_o earth_n and_o the_o heaven_n be_v the_o work_n of_o thy_o hand_n repl._n in_o these_o word_n he_o convert_v his_o speech_n to_o the_o father_n to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v able_a by_o his_o power_n to_o lift_v up_o the_o son_n to_o divine_a majesty_n answ_n this_o be_v a_o impudent_a shift_n and_o elusion_n 1._o because_o it_o be_v say_v before_o but_o unto_o the_o son_n which_o appertain_v to_o both_o place_n of_o the_o psalm_n cite_v by_o the_o apostle_n 2._o because_o the_o psalm_n do_v entreat_v of_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o therefore_o those_o word_n which_o there_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o lord_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v next_o and_o immediate_o of_o his_o person_n secondary_o and_o mediate_o of_o the_o father_n repl._n 1_o if_o he_o make_v all_o thing_n than_o the_o father_n make_v they_o not_o by_o he_o ●9_n john_n 5._o ●9_n ans_fw-fr both_o he_o make_v they_o and_o they_o be_v make_v by_o he_o whatsoever_o thing_n the_o father_n do_v the_o same_o do_v the_o son_n also_o and_o yet_o the_o father_n do_v they_o by_o he_o repl._n 2._o the_o creator_n can_v be_v compare_v with_o the_o creature_n but_o christ_n be_v there_o compare_v with_o the_o angel_n therefore_o creation_n of_o thing_n be_v not_o attribute_v unto_o christ_n answ_n he_o be_v not_o compare_v with_o the_o creature_n in_o any_o proportion_n but_o without_o proportion_n this_o the_o place_n itself_o of_o the_o psalm_n prove_v the_o heaven_n shall_v perish_v but_o thou_o do_v remanine_a repl._n 3_o if_o he_o be_v creator_n and_o equal_a with_o the_o father_n he_o can_v not_o sit_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n ans_fw-fr we_o may_v invert_v this_o and_o say_v of_o the_o contrary_a rather_o if_o he_o be_v not_o equal_a he_o can_v not_o sit_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n because_o none_o but_o the_o omnipotent_a and_o true_a god_n be_v able_a to_o administer_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n 22.23_o phil._n 2.6_o esay_n 45.23_o rom._n 14.11_o esay_n 41.12_o rev._n 1.18_o &_o 22.23_o think_v it_o no_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n that_o create_a heaven_n every_o knee_n shall_v bow_v unto_o i_o this_o be_v say_v of_o christ_n again_o i_o be_o i_o be_o the_o first_o and_o i_o be_o the_o last_o my_o hand_n have_v lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o my_o right_a hand_n have_v span_v the_o heaven_n when_o i_o call_v they_o they_o stand_v up_o together_o these_o word_n christ_n appli_v unto_o himself_o in_o it_o be_v life_n and_o the_o life_n be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n we_o interpret_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v by_o himself_o the_o life_n life_n in_o the_o word_n be_v life_n as_o be_v the_o father_n and_o the_o fountain_n giver_n and_o maintainer_n of_o all_o life_n as_o well_o corporal_a and_o temporal_a as_o spiritual_a and_o eternal_a in_o all_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o world_n 5.26_o john_n 5.26_o he_o have_v give_v to_o the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o they_o construe_v it_o that_o the_o man_n jesus_n be_v the_o quickener_n and_o giver_n of_o life_n because_o in_o he_o be_v the_o life_n of_o all_o that_o no_o man_n without_o he_o and_o all_o by_o he_o be_v save_v these_o be_v their_o word_n unto_o which_o we_o reply_v if_o he_o give_v eternal_a life_n to_o all_o so_o that_o no_o man_n have_v it_o without_o he_o therefore_o either_o no_o man_n be_v quicken_v before_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o mary_n which_o be_v absurd_a or_o he_o be_v the_o quickener_n and_o giver_n of_o life_n from_o the_o beginning_n even_o as_o john_n affirm_v this_o of_o he_o as_o be_v verify_v in_o he_o also_o before_o he_o be_v make_v flesh_n neither_o can_v this_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o his_o merit_n whereby_o he_o deserve_v this_o life_n for_o man_n for_o that_o life_n be_v in_o he_o signify_v that_o he_o be_v 10.26_o john_n 5.21_o &_o 10.26_o by_o his_o efficacy_n and_o effectual_a work_n the_o quickener_n and_o reviver_n as_o himself_o expound_v it_o and_o the_o adversary_n themselves_o confess_v so_o be_v we_o also_o to_o understand_v his_o illightning_n of_o man_n that_o be_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n the_o author_n whereof_o he_o be_v in_o all_o even_o from_o the_o beginning_n as_o himself_o say_v no_o man_n know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o and_o john_n baptist_n say_v 1.18_o mat._n 11.27_o john_n 1.18_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o son_n have_v declare_v he_o darkness_n the_o light_n shine_v in_o darkness_n and_o the_o light_n shine_v in_o the_o darkness_n and_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v it_o not_o we_o interpret_v it_o that_o this_o word_n even_o from_o the_o beginning_n have_v both_o by_o natural_a light_n and_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o heavenly_a doctrine_n show_v god_n unto_o man_n but_o those_o who_o be_v not_o regenerate_v by_o his_o spirit_n have_v not_o know_v this_o light_n they_o say_v that_o he_o shine_v not_o before_o he_o begin_v to_o preach_v ans_fw-fr 1._o if_o so_o then_o shall_v he_o not_o have_v be_v the_o true_a light_n that_o be_v the_o author_n of_o light_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n but_o only_o a_o minister_n thereof_o as_o be_v john_n baptist_n but_o the_o evangelist_n in_o this_o respect_n make_v john_n baptist_n diverse_a from_o christ_n 2._o he_o shall_v not_o have_v be_v the_o illuminator_n of_o all_o man_n which_o yet_o themselves_o be_v fain_o to_o confess_v christ_n himself_o say_v of_o himself_o and_o saint_n john_n here_o of_o he_o he_o light_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n that_o be_v either_o with_o natural_a light_n or_o spiritual_a he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o the_o world_n know_v he_o not_o we_o as_o touch_v the_o time_n hereof_o say_v world_n he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n unto_o his_o incarnation_n all_o which_o time_n the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v create_v by_o he_o show_v god_n unto_o man_n but_o be_v not_o know_v of_o man_n they_o construe_v it_o of_o the_o time_n of_o his_o preach_n when_o he_o be_v not_o hear_v but_o despise_v and_o persecute_v ans_fw-fr
1._o s._n john_n teach_v the_o plain_a contrary_n he_o be_v say_v he_o the_o life_n and_o light_n of_o all_o man_n and_o again_o he_o light_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n therefore_o before_o his_o preach_n and_o his_o nativity_n of_o the_o virgin_n 2._o john_n say_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n mean_v thereby_o all_o mankind_n because_o he_o oppose_v to_o this_o world_n his_o own_o nation_n and_o country_n to_o which_o he_o come_v 3._o he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o know_v of_o that_o world_n which_o before_o be_v make_v of_o he_o now_o the_o new_a world_n be_v the_o elect_v regenerate_v who_o after_o they_o be_v create_v that_o be_v regenerate_v of_o he_o know_v he_o 4._o after_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n he_o be_v not_o know_v of_o it_o then_o last_o he_o come_v unto_o his_o own_o that_o be_v unto_o the_o jew_n be_v bear_v of_o they_o and_o manifest_v himself_o unto_o they_o in_o the_o flesh_n which_o he_o take_v but_o he_o be_v no_o less_o despise_v of_o these_o if_o then_o he_o be_v first_o despise_v of_o the_o world_n and_o afterward_o of_o his_o own_o for_o this_o the_o order_n of_o the_o pprophecy_n require_v he_o be_v despise_v before_o his_o preach_n and_o incarnation_n because_o in_o his_o flesh_n he_o manifest_v himself_o to_o none_o before_o the_o jew_n other_o place_n also_o show_v that_o he_o exist_v before_o his_o incarnation_n i_o be_v daily_o his_o delight_n rejoice_v always_o before_o he_o 8.30_o prov._n 8.30_o and_o take_v my_o solace_n in_o the_o compass_n of_o his_o earth_n and_o my_o delight_n be_v with_o the_o child_n of_o man_n 3.18_o 1_o pet._n 3.18_o he_o be_v quicken_v in_o the_o spirit_n by_o the_o which_o he_o also_o go_v and_o preach_v unto_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o time_n pass_v disobedient_a that_o now_o be_v in_o prison_n own_o he_o come_v unto_o his_o own_o he_o come_v unto_o his_o own_o and_o his_o own_o receive_v he_o not_o here_o john_n begin_v to_o speak_v of_o his_o come_n into_o the_o flesh_n which_o he_o take_v of_o the_o jew_n unto_o who_o he_o be_v promise_v and_o of_o his_o ministry_n among_o the_o jew_n and_o of_o their_o contempt_n towards_o he_o they_o sound_v this_o part_n with_o the_o former_a as_o if_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o same_o time_n but_o the_o course_n of_o his_o speech_n show_v that_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o christ_n be_v before_o in_o the_o world_n not_o know_v and_o afterward_o come_v to_o his_o own_o and_o be_v not_o receive_v because_o although_o he_o be_v not_o already_o in_o the_o world_n yet_o than_o he_o come_v unto_o his_o own_o therefore_o here_o be_v understand_v a_o new_a come_n a_o new_a manifestation_n whereby_o after_o a_o singular_a and_o new_a manner_n he_o begin_v to_o be_v in_o his_o own_o country_n and_o people_n which_o be_v then_o do_v when_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o mary_n and_o from_o thence_o forward_o son_n the_o godhead_n of_o the_o son_n but_o as_o many_o as_o receive_v he_o to_o they_o he_o give_v power_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n even_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n here_o be_v a_o triple_a proof_n of_o his_o divinity_n 1._o none_o can_v give_v power_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o authority_n but_o god_n himself_o but_o christ_n not_o only_o as_o a_o minister_n and_o messenger_n but_o in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o of_o his_o own_o authority_n give_v this_o power_n and_o right_n therefore_o he_o be_v god_n himself_o 2._o he_o that_o make_v other_o the_o son_n of_o god_n must_v regenerate_v they_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o make_v they_o partaker_n of_o the_o father_n nature_n this_o none_o do_v or_o can_v do_v but_o god_n himself_o therefore_o christ_n be_v by_o nature_n god_n 3._o he_o give_v this_o power_n to_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n but_o faith_n must_v not_o rest_v on_o any_o creature_n but_o on_o god_n only_o therefore_o christ_n be_v no_o creature_n but_o the_o eternal_a god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n saint_n john_n declare_v the_o manner_n how_o that_o word_n come_v unto_o his_o own_o flesh_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n namely_o that_o he_o be_v make_v man_n and_o that_o weak_a mortal_a like_a unto_o we_o in_o all_o thing_n except_o sin_v therefore_o he_o say_v he_o be_v make_v flesh_n and_o converse_v among_o man_n for_o a_o season_n now_o he_o be_v man_n not_o by_o any_o change_n but_o by_o take_v the_o humane_a nature_n unto_o his_o godhead_n they_o construe_v it_o that_o this_o doctor_n or_o teacher_n be_v not_o be_v make_v a_o man_n weak_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o base_a which_o they_o will_v prove_v because_o say_v they_o the_o greek_a word_n signify_v oftentimes_o not_o to_o be_v make_v but_o to_o be_v as_o john_n be_v a_o man_n where_o the_o same_o greek_a word_n be_v use_v ans_fw-fr 1._o the_o word_n signify_v more_o common_o to_o be_v make_v as_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o in_o both_o which_o place_n as_o in_o other_o also_o the_o same_o greek_a word_n be_v use_v 2._o it_o signify_v in_o this_o place_n also_o that_o he_o be_v make_v 1._o because_o it_o be_v show_v before_o that_o the_o word_n signify_v a_o subsistence_n or_o person_n which_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o he_o begin_v to_o be_v flesh_n when_o he_o come_v unto_o his_o own_o now_o he_o teach_v that_o christ_n do_v before_o time_n lighten_v all_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o be_v in_o the_o world_n not_o know_v when_o he_o come_v unto_o his_o own_o therefore_o he_o not_o only_o be_v but_o be_v make_v flesh_n which_o before_o he_o be_v not_o 3._o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o teach_v the_o same_o in_o other_o word_n do_v not_o admit_v any_o other_o sense_n or_o meaning_n he_o take_v the_o seed_n of_o abraham_n he_o take_v part_n of_o their_o flesh_n and_o blood_n he_o take_v on_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n when_o as_o he_o be_v before_o in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n 4.23_o heb._n 2.16.14_o phil._n 2.7_o 2_o cor._n 8.9_o 1_o tim._n 3.16_o 1_o john_n 4.23_o he_o be_v rich_a for_o your_o sake_n become_v poor_a god_n be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n there_o be_v one_o thing_n therefore_o in_o christ_n which_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o another_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o flesh_n itself_o wherein_o that_o come_v repl._n the_o place_n hebr._n 2._o mean_v his_o deliver_n of_o we_o ans_fw-fr first_o the_o word_n which_o go_v before_o second_o the_o sense_n show_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o there_o of_o any_o quality_n but_o of_o the_o very_a humane_a nature_n when_o as_o he_o show_v that_o therefore_o christ_n be_v necessary_o to_o have_v be_v true_a man_n because_o man_n be_v to_o be_v deliver_v by_o he_o through_o his_o sacrifice_n truth_n the_o word_n full_a of_o grace_n &_o truth_n and_o the_o word_n dwell_v among_o we_o full_a of_o grace_n and_o truth_n christ_n fulfil_v all_o the_o promise_n and_o type_n and_o figure_n of_o the_o law_n and_o do_v true_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o redeemer_n and_o mediator_n not_o only_o by_o his_o merit_n but_o also_o by_o his_o power_n and_o efficacy_n as_o afterward_o be_v add_v out_o of_o john_n baptist_n sermon_n that_o this_o truth_n and_o grace_n befall_v unto_o we_o through_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o fullness_n all_o who_o ever_o be_v save_v have_v receive_v which_o s._n paul_n say_v even_o that_o we_o be_v consummate_v and_o make_v perfect_a in_o he_o which_o will_v not_o be_v except_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n do_v dwell_v in_o he_o personal_o beget_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v and_o we_o see_v the_o glory_n thereof_o as_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o the_o father_n this_o glory_n be_v the_o divine_a power_n which_o he_o show_v in_o his_o miracle_n in_o his_o transfiguration_n upon_o the_o mount_n in_o his_o resurrection_n from_o death_n his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n his_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n his_o power_n and_o efficacy_n by_o his_o ministry_n now_o thus_o far_o they_o agree_v and_o confess_v the_o same_o but_o when_o we_o say_v further_o this_o glory_n testify_v he_o to_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o ●od_n that_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o nature_n beget_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n w●●_n be_v also_o himself_o the_o very_a tr●●_n eternal_a god_n maker_n of_o all_o thing_n here_o they_o shake_v hand_n with_o we_o and_o dissent_v for_o they_o say_v that_o he_o be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v not_o
of_o the_o manner_n of_o exist_v but_o not_o of_o essence_n for_o this_o they_o have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o in_o number_n with_o the_o father_n from_o everlasting_a and_o that_o be_v void_a of_o all_o beginning_n and_o original_n and_o exi_v necessary_o from_o no_o other_o but_o of_o itself_o his_o go_n forth_o have_v be_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o from_o everlasting_a now_o glorify_v i_o thou_o father_n 17.5_o micah_n 5.2_o john_n 17.5_o with_o thy_o own_o self_n with_o the_o glory_n which_o i_o have_v with_o thou_o before_o the_o world_n be_v repl._n but_o he_o who_o have_v his_o original_n of_o person_n from_o another_o be_v not_o jehovah_n but_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v their_o original_n of_o person_n from_o the_o father_n therefore_o they_o be_v not_o jehovah_n answ_n the_o major_n be_v a_o false_a ground_n for_o the_o scripture_n do_v plain_o teach_v both_o of_o they_o namely_o both_o the_o son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v jehovah_n as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v likewise_o to_o the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o 5.26_o john_n 5.26_o and_o yet_o the_o scripture_n wu_fw-fr hall_n affirm_v that_o both_o have_v their_o original_n of_o person_n from_o the_o father_n for_o the_o father_n beget_v not_o the_o essence_n but_o the_o person_n by_o communicate_v unto_o he_o his_o own_o essence_n the_o same_o and_o whole_a 4._o the_o faithful_a be_v one_o with_o god_n not_o in_o essence_n but_o in_o consent_n of_o will_n but_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v in_o such_o sort_n one_o as_o the_o faithful_a be_v one_o with_o god_n father_n keep_v they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o as_o we_o be_v one_o therefore_o 21._o john_n 17.11_o 21._o the_o son_n be_v one_o with_o the_o father_n in_o conjunction_n of_o will_n only_o and_o not_o in_o unity_n of_o essence_n answ_n there_o be_v more_o in_o the_o conclusion_n than_o in_o the_o premise_n for_o the_o particle_n only_o which_o be_v stitch_v to_o the_o conclusion_n be_v not_o in_o the_o minor_a proposition_n wherefore_o of_o a_o minor_a which_o be_v but_o particular_a a_o universal_a conclusion_n be_v ill_o infer_v after_o this_o manner_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a unity_n between_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n such_o as_o be_v between_o god_n and_o the_o faithful_a therefore_o all_o unity_n which_o be_v betwixt_o they_o be_v such_o wherefore_o we_o say_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v one_o with_o god_n and_o among_o themselves_o in_o will_n only_o or_o conformity_n or_o conjunction_n of_o mind_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v one_o both_o in_o will_n and_o furthermore_o in_o unity_n of_o essence_n i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o 1.3_o john_n 10.30_o &_o 14.10_o heb._n 1.3_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n be_v in_o i_o who_o be_v the_o ingraved_a form_n of_o his_o father_n substance_n wherefore_o if_o a_o wide_a and_o more_o ample_a conjunction_n be_v put_v a_o straight_a conjunction_n be_v not_o thereby_o exclude_v 5._o he_o that_o be_v the_o whole_a godhead_n be_v not_o any_o one_o person_n of_o the_o godhead_n or_o there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o beside_o he_o in_o who_o likewise_o the_o whole_a godhead_n be_v but_o the_o father_n be_v the_o whole_a godhead_n therefore_o the_o father_n be_v not_o any_o one_o but_o even_o all_o the_o person_n that_o be_v of_o the_o godhead_n neither_o be_v there_o more_o person_n wherein_o that_o godhead_n be_v ans_fw-fr we_o deny_v the_o major_a because_o the_o same_o godhead_n which_o be_v in_o the_o father_n be_v whole_a also_o in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o immensity_n and_o undividablenesse_n thereof_o that_o be_v communicate_v of_o the_o father_n even_o the_o same_o entire_a and_o whole_a both_o to_o the_o son_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o that_o there_o be_v neither_o more_o nor_o less_o of_o the_o godhead_n in_o every_o person_n than_o either_o in_o two_o or_o in_o all_o three_o 6._o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v neither_o beget_v nor_o proceed_v of_o another_o but_o the_o son_n be_v beget_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v therefore_o they_o be_v not_o the_o same_o divine_a essence_n which_o the_o father_n be_v answ_n of_o mere_a particular_n nothing_o can_v follow_v or_o be_v conclude_v the_o major_n can_v be_v expound_v general_o for_o it_o be_v false_a that_o whatsoever_o be_v the_o divine_a essence_n he_o be_v not_o beget_v or_o proceed_v 7._o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v incarnate_a the_o three_o person_n be_v the_o divine_a essence_n therefore_o the_o three_o person_n be_v incarnate_a answ_n of_o mere_a particular_n there_o follow_v nothing_o the_o major_n speak_v only_o of_o the_o son_n for_o it_o be_v false_a be_v take_v general_o as_o whatsoever_o be_v the_o divine_a essence_n be_v incarnate_a this_o general_a proposition_n be_v false_a for_o the_o divine_a essence_n be_v incarnate_a only_o in_o one_o of_o the_o person_n which_o be_v the_o son_n not_o in_o all_o three_o 8._o the_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n be_v not_o god_n himself_o but_o the_o son_n be_v the_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o god_n answ_n the_o major_n be_v apparent_o false_a because_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n it_o may_v be_v argue_v that_o the_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n be_v not_o man_n repl._n the_o major_n be_v thus_o prove_v god_n can_v be_v less_o than_o himself_o or_o inferior_a to_o himself_o but_o the_o mediator_n with_o god_n be_v less_o and_o inferior_a unto_o god_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o god_n ans_fw-fr the_o minor_a be_v true_a only_a in_o respect_n of_o christ_n office_n in_o which_o sense_n christ_n be_v inferior_a unto_o god_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o essence_n and_o nature_n according_a to_o the_o four_o rule_n the_o inequality_n of_o office_n do_v not_o infer_v inequality_n of_o nature_n or_o person_n repl._n 2._o the_o son_n be_v mediator_n with_o jehovah_n but_o the_o son_n be_v jehovah_n therefore_o jehovah_n be_v mediator_n with_o himself_o ans_fw-fr nothing_o follow_v of_o mere_a particular_n for_o the_o son_n be_v not_o mediator_n with_o all_o that_o be_v jehovah_n but_o with_o the_o father_n rep._n 3._o therefore_o the_o father_n only_o be_v pacify_v towards_o we_o and_o by_o a_o consequent_a he_o alone_o be_v the_o true_a god_n not_o the_o son_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o he_o be_v the_o true_a god_n who_o be_v pacify_v by_o the_o mediator_n answ_n we_o deny_v this_o sequel_n for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o will_n of_o the_o three_o person_n and_o that_o agree_v in_o all_o thing_n wherefore_o the_o father_n be_v please_v and_o pacify_v for_o the_o son_n satisfaction_n in_o our_o behalf_n the_o son_n also_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v pacify_v and_o receive_v we_o into_o favour_n for_o the_o same_o satisfaction_n rep._n 4._o who_o the_o son_n pacifi_v with_o he_o he_o be_v mediator_n but_o the_o son_n pacifi_v not_o only_o the_o father_n but_o himself_o also_o therefore_o he_o be_v mediator_n with_o himself_o which_o to_o grant_v be_v absurd_a answ_n first_o we_o answer_v to_o the_o major_a that_o the_o son_n be_v proper_o say_v to_o be_v mediator_n with_o he_o who_o he_o so_o pacifi_v with_o his_o satisfaction_n that_o the_o decree_n and_o purpose_n of_o atonement_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v original_o issue_v from_o he_o now_o this_o be_v the_o father_n alone_o therefore_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o son_n be_v not_o mediator_n with_o himself_o but_o with_o the_o father_n alone_o second_o we_o answer_v to_o the_o minor_a that_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a to_o say_v that_o the_o son_n be_v mediator_n to_o or_o with_o himself_o for_o it_o be_v no_o inconvenience_n that_o he_o shall_v manage_v both_o function_n namely_o of_o god_n admit_v the_o reconciliation_n and_o of_o the_o mediator_n make_v the_o reconciliation_n each_o in_o a_o diverse_a respect_n the_o former_a of_o these_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o divine_a nature_n the_o late_a by_o reason_n of_o his_o office_n of_o the_o mediatorship_n 9_o christ_n do_v everywhere_o discern_v and_o sever_v himself_o from_o the_o father_n he_o have_v a_o head_n he_o have_v a_o god_n he_o be_v less_o than_o the_o father_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o the_o same_o god_n with_o the_o father_n or_o he_o be_v not_o equal_a and_o consubstantial_a with_o the_o father_n answ_n he_o discern_v and_o distinguise_v himself_o from_o the_o father_n 1._o in_o person_n 2._o in_o office_n as_o he_o be_v mediator_n but_o not_o in_o godhead_n so_o he_o have_v a_o head_n and_o a_o god_n and_o be_v less_o than_o the_o father_n 1._o as_o touch_v his_o humanity_n in_o nature_n and_o office_n 2._o as_o touch_v his_o godhead_n not_o in_o nature_n but_o
deliver_v but_o shall_v sustain_v punishment_n eternal_a which_o be_v without_o end_n 4._o christ_n also_o himself_o have_v foretold_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v die_v except_o i_o go_v away_o 9.7_o john_n 9.7_o the_o comforter_n will_v not_o come_v unto_o you_o 13.8_o john_n 13.8_o if_o i_o wash_v thou_o not_o thou_o shall_v have_v no_o part_n with_o i_o in_o this_o question_n therefore_o three_o memorable_a circumstance_n concur_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o god_n justice_n shall_v be_v satisfy_v 2._o that_o this_o satisfaction_n be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o death_n 3._o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v accomplish_v by_o the_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n alone_o out_o of_o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v we_o may_v draw_v these_o doctrine_n 1._o that_o sin_n be_v most_o of_o all_o to_o be_v eschew_v of_o we_o which_o can_v not_o be_v expiate_v but_o by_o the_o death_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 2._o that_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v thankful_a to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n for_o this_o his_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n of_o unspeakable_a grace_n and_o favour_n bestow_v upon_o we_o 3._o that_o all_o our_o sin_n how_o many_o how_o great_a and_o how_o grievous_a soever_o they_o be_v be_v expiate_v and_o do_v away_o by_o the_o death_n alone_o of_o christ_n 3._o for_o who_o christ_n die_v or_o whether_o he_o die_v for_o all_o we_o must_v answer_v this_o question_n by_o distinguish_v the_o term_n thereof_o that_o so_o we_o may_v reconcile_v such_o scripture_n as_o carry_v a_o show_n of_o contrariety_n for_o in_o some_o place_n christ_n be_v say_v to_o have_v die_v for_o all_o side_n testimony_n of_o scripture_n allege_v on_o both_o side_n and_o for_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o who_o be_v a_o reconciliation_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o not_o for_o our_o sin_n only_o but_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o by_o god_n grace_n he_o may_v taste_v of_o death_n for_o all_o man_n 2.6_o 1._o that_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o 1_o john_n 2.2_o heb._n 2.9_o 2_o cor._n 5.1415_o 1_o tim._n 2.6_o we_o thus_o judge_v that_o if_o one_o be_v dead_a for_o all_o then_o be_v all_o dead_a and_o he_o die_v for_o all_o that_o they_o which_o live_v shall_v not_o henceforth_o live_v unto_o themselves_o but_o unto_o he_o which_o die_v for_o they_o and_z rise_v again_z who_o give_v himself_o a_o ransom_n for_o all_o man_n contrariwise_o in_o as_o many_o place_n christ_n be_v say_v to_o have_v die_v pray_v offer_v up_o himself_o 5.25_o 2_o that_o christ_n die_v not_o for_o all_o but_o for_o many_o john_n 17.9_o mat._n 20.28_o mat._n 15.24_o mat._n 1.21_o mat._n 26.28_o heb._n 9.28_o esay_n 53.11_o ephes_n 5.25_o etc._n etc._n only_o for_o many_o only_o for_o the_o elect_a for_o his_o peculiar_a people_n for_o his_o church_n for_o his_o sheep_n etc._n etc._n not_o for_o the_o world_n not_o for_o the_o unfaithful_a i_o pray_v for_o they_o i_o pray_v not_o for_o the_o world_n but_o for_o they_o which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o for_o they_o be_v thou_o that_o be_v for_o the_o elect_n alone_o the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v not_o to_o be_v serve_v but_o to_o serve_v and_o to_o give_v his_o life_n for_o the_o ransom_n of_o many_o i_o be_o not_o send_v but_o unto_o the_o lose_a sheep_n of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n he_o shall_v save_v his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n christ_n be_v once_o offer_v to_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o many_o by_o his_o knowledge_n shall_v my_o righteous_a servant_n justify_v many_o for_o he_o shall_v bear_v their_o iniquity_n christ_n love_v the_o church_n and_o give_v himself_o for_o it_o believe_v a_o twofold_a reconciliation_n of_o such_o scripture_n as_o plead_v for_o all_o 1._o b_o restrain_v all_o to_o all_o that_o believe_v what_o shall_v we_o say_v then_o be_v scripture_n disagreeable_a with_o scripture_n no_o very_o howbeit_o it_o seem_v so_o unless_o these_o general_a and_o particular_a aphorism_n be_v reconcile_v by_o some_o pithy_a and_o plausible_a distinction_n the_o distinction_n and_o reconcilement_n of_o these_o place_n be_v twofold_a either_o of_o which_o be_v true_a and_o sound_a 1._o some_o interpret_v these_o general_a allegation_n of_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o the_o faithful_a or_o of_o all_o the_o believe_a because_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n do_v proper_o appertain_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o because_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o scripture_n restrain_v those_o promise_n to_o the_o believe_a whosoever_o believe_v in_o he_o 10.43_o john_n 3.16_o rom._n 3.22_o act_n 10.43_o shall_v not_o perish_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n unto_o all_o and_o upon_o all_o that_o believe_v through_o his_o name_n all_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n s._n ambrose_n expound_v the_o general_a text_n of_o scripture_n on_o this_o wise_a gent._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 3._o de_fw-la vocat_fw-la gent._n the_o people_n of_o god_n say_v he_o have_v their_o fullness_n and_o although_o a_o great_a number_n of_o man_n neglect_v or_o cast_v from_o they_o the_o grace_n of_o their_o saviour_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a special_a university_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o foreknown_a of_o god_n sever_v and_o discern_v from_o the_o generality_n of_o all_o to_o this_o intent_n that_o a_o whole_a world_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v save_v out_o of_o a_o whole_a world_n and_o all_o man_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v redeem_v from_o out_o of_o all_o man_n thus_o be_v there_o no_o repugnancy_n no_o contrariety_n between_o these_o scripture_n for_o all_o true_a believer_n be_v those_o many_o that_o peculiar_a people_n that_o church_n those_o sheep_n those_o choose_v which_o be_v give_v unto_o christ_n and_o for_o who_o christ_n give_v himself_o death_n by_o the_o distinguish_n between_o the_o sufficiency_n &_o efficacy_n of_o christ_n death_n other_o reconcile_v these_o scripture_n by_o a_o distinction_n of_o the_o sufficiency_n and_o efficacy_n of_o christ_n death_n for_o certain_a wrangle_a sophist_n there_o be_v who_o admit_v not_o this_o restriction_n of_o these_o general_a promise_n to_o the_o faithful_a alone_o that_o be_v they_o deny_v that_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n enforce_v any_o such_o restriction_n and_o for_o proof_n of_o their_o conceit_n they_o quote_v and_o allege_v certain_a place_n which_o seem_v to_o impart_v redemption_n and_o salvation_n not_o only_o to_o the_o faithful_a but_o to_o hypocrite_n also_o and_o apostate_n as_o that_o of_o peter_n deny_v the_o lord_n which_o have_v buy_v they_o and_o have_v forget_v that_o he_o be_v purge_v from_o his_o old_a sin_n 1.9_o 2_o pet._n 2.12_o 2_o pet._n 1.9_o all_o which_o scripture_n it_o be_v manifest_a be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o interpret_v either_o of_o the_o vain_a glory_v of_o hypocrite_n of_o their_o redemption_n and_o sanctification_n or_o of_o the_o extent_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o christ_n satisfaction_n wherefore_o that_o we_o be_v not_o force_v to_o maintain_v frivolous_a contention_n with_o such_o crabbed_a perverse_a disputer_n touch_v the_o restriction_n of_o these_o general_a promise_n before_o specify_v and_o for_o more_o sound_n and_o ample_a answer_n unto_o those_o place_n concern_v the_o redemption_n of_o hypocrite_n some_o choose_v rather_o and_o not_o unfit_o as_o i_o suppose_v to_o interpret_v those_o scripture_n in_o show_n contrary_a one_o to_o the_o other_o partly_o of_o the_o sufficiency_n and_o partly_o of_o the_o application_n and_o efficacy_n of_o christ_n death_n they_o answer_v therefore_o that_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o and_o again_o die_v not_o for_o all_o in_o a_o diverse_a respect_n man_n how_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o have_v die_v for_o all_o man_n and_o again_o not_o to_o have_v die_v for_o all_o man_n 1._o christ_n die_v for_o all_o man_n absolute_o and_o without_o exception_n as_o touch_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o price_n which_o he_o pay_v 2._o christ_n die_v not_o for_o all_o man_n but_o for_o the_o elect_n alone_o and_o the_o faithful_a as_o touch_v the_o application_n participation_n and_o efficacy_n of_o his_o merit_n and_o passion_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o former_a be_v because_o christ_n ransom_n be_v of_o such_o weight_n and_o worth_n that_o it_o may_v serve_v and_o be_v sufficient_a to_o purge_v and_o cleanse_v all_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n if_o at_o least_o all_o man_n will_v apprehend_v by_o faith_n this_o salve_n of_o sin_n for_o it_o can_v no_o way_n be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v insufficient_a lest_o this_o blasphemous_a inconvenience_n which_o god_n forbid_v shall_v follow_v that_o some_o cause_n of_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o wicked_a rest_v in_o the_o defect_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o mediator_n the_o
contradiction_n as_o if_o thou_o shall_v say_v i_o be_o certain_a of_o my_o reward_n therefore_o i_o will_v not_o run_v for_o a_o reward_n be_v not_o give_v but_o to_o he_o that_o run_v these_o proposition_n do_v one_o mutual_o follow_v another_o to_o be_v certain_a of_o salvation_n and_o to_o have_v a_o desire_n of_o conversion_n and_o amendment_n of_o life_n 2._o what_o predestination_n be_v providence_n the_o difference_n between_o predestination_n and_o providence_n predestination_n differ_v from_o providence_n as_o a_o special_a from_o the_o general_a for_o providence_n be_v the_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o god_n concern_v all_o creature_n but_o predestination_n be_v the_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o god_n concern_v the_o save_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n wherefore_o predestination_n be_v the_o eternal_a most_o just_a and_o unchangeable_a counsel_n of_o god_n of_o create_v man_n of_o permit_v their_o fall_n into_o sin_n and_o eternal_a death_n of_o send_v his_o son_n into_o flesh_n that_o he_o may_v be_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o of_o convert_v some_o by_o the_o word_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o mediator_n sake_n and_o save_v they_o in_o true_a faith_n and_o conversion_n justify_v they_o by_o and_o for_o he_o raise_v they_o up_o to_o glory_n and_o bestow_v on_o they_o eternal_a life_n and_o of_o leave_v the_o rest_n in_o sin_n and_o eternal_a death_n and_o raise_v they_o up_o to_o judgement_n and_o cast_v they_o into_o eternal_a pain_n here_o be_v speak_v of_o man_n which_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o not_o save_v therefore_o to_o they_o only_o and_o not_o to_o angel_n do_v this_o definition_n of_o predestination_n agree_v the_o part_n of_o predestination_n be_v election_n and_o reprobation_n election_n be_v the_o eternal_a election_n election_n unchangeable_a free_a and_o most_o just_a decree_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o have_v decree_v to_o convert_v some_o to_o christ_n to_o preserve_v and_o keep_v they_o in_o faith_n and_o repentance_n and_o by_o he_o to_o give_v they_o eternal_a life_n reprobation_n be_v such_o a_o decree_n of_o god_n as_o whereby_o he_o have_v decree_v to_o leave_v some_o reprobation_n reprobation_n according_a to_o his_o most_o just_a judgement_n in_o their_o sin_n to_o punish_v they_o with_o blindness_n and_o damnation_n and_o condemn_v they_o be_v not_o make_v partaker_n of_o christ_n everlasting_o that_o election_n likewise_o as_o also_o reprobation_n be_v both_o the_o decree_n of_o god_n these_o and_o the_o like_a say_n do_v prove_v i_o know_v who_o i_o have_v choose_v his_o grace_n be_v give_v to_o we_o before_o the_o world_n be_v 9.18_o john_n 13.18_o 2_o tim._n 1.9_o rom._n 9.18_o he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_n but_o therefore_o election_n and_o reprobation_n be_v make_v by_o counsel_n and_o therefore_o both_o be_v a_o decree_n and_o that_o eternal_a because_o there_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n in_o god_n but_o all_o from_o everlasting_a and_o the_o scripture_n do_v manifest_o say_v 1.4_o ephes_n 1.4_o that_o god_n have_v choose_v we_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n see_v then_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o he_o have_v therefore_o reject_v the_o rest_n that_o which_o the_o very_a word_n of_o choose_v do_v show_v for_o whatsoever_o be_v choose_v the_o same_o be_v choose_v other_o thing_n be_v reject_v 3._o what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o predestination_n or_o election_n and_o reprobation_n the_o efficient_a and_o motive_n cause_n be_v the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n it_o be_v so_o o_o father_n 2.3_o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o our_o election_n god_n good_a pleasure_n not_o any_o thing_n in_o we_o ephes_n 2.3_o because_o thy_o good_a pleasure_n be_v such_o god_n have_v not_o foresee_v any_o thing_n in_o we_o for_o which_o he_o shall_v choose_v we_o for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o good_a in_o we_o as_o of_o ourselves_o see_v we_o be_v by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n as_o well_o as_o other_o for_o if_o any_o good_a be_v find_v in_o we_o that_o he_o do_v work_v whole_o in_o we_o and_o he_o work_v nothing_o in_o we_o which_o he_o have_v not_o decree_v to_o work_v from_o everlasting_a wherefore_o the_o alone_a gracious_a and_o free_a good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n or_o the_o alone_a free_a mercy_n of_o god_n be_v the_o efficient_a and_o motive_n cause_n of_o our_o election_n our_o election_n i_o say_v be_v of_o grace_n and_o free_a that_o be_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o any_o good_a foresee_v in_o we_o 15.16_o rom._n 9.18_o john_n 15.16_o he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v that_o be_v he_o free_o give_v what_o he_o give_v you_o have_v not_o choose_v i_o but_o i_o have_v choose_v you_o god_n have_v predestine_v we_o to_o be_v adopt_v through_o jesus_n christ_n unto_o himself_o 1.5_o the_o cause_n of_o reprobation_n be_v in_o god._n ephes_n 1.5_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n see_v further_o rom._n 9.11_o col._n 1.12_o 2_o tim._n 1.9_o 10._o in_o like_a manner_n also_o the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o reprobation_n be_v the_o most_o free_a good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n for_o we_o be_v all_o by_o nature_n the_o child_n of_o wrath_n have_v all_o perish_v if_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o reprobation_n wherefore_o the_o cause_n of_o reprobation_n be_v not_o in_o man_n themselves_o but_o that_o be_v in_o god_n his_o will_n of_o show_v forth_o his_o justice_n therefore_o of_o particular_a man_n why_o this_o man_n be_v elect_v and_o the_o reprobated_a there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o reason_n give_v but_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o god_n only_o but_o the_o cause_n of_o damnation_n be_v altogether_o in_o man_n which_o be_v sin_n for_o god_n will_v declare_v his_o justice_n in_o the_o damnation_n of_o the_o reprobate_n he_o therefore_o condemn_v no_o man_n not_o ordain_v unto_o condemnation_n unless_o it_o be_v for_o sin_n neither_o will_v he_o the_o damnation_n as_o it_o be_v damnation_n but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o just_a punishment_n now_o punishment_n take_v not_o place_n but_o there_o where_o sin_n be_v before_o seat_v man_n the_o cause_n of_o damnation_n be_v the_o free_a will_n of_o devil_n and_o man_n the_o principal_a cause_n therefore_o of_o damnation_n be_v the_o free_a will_n of_o devil_n and_o man_n because_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n they_o fall_v from_o god_n but_o the_o first_o cause_n of_o salvation_n be_v the_o eternal_a and_o free_a election_n of_o god_n whereof_o god_n foresee_v no_o cause_n in_o we_o why_o he_o will_v convert_v we_o unto_o christ_n rather_o than_o other_o why_o he_o will_v save_v and_o redeem_v we_o out_o of_o the_o common_a and_o general_a destruction_n wherein_o all_o be_v plunge_v rather_o than_o other_o the_o supreme_a final_a cause_n of_o predestination_n be_v god_n glory_n and_o the_o last_o and_o proper_a final_a cause_n of_o election_n be_v the_o manifestation_n of_o god_n goodness_n and_o mercy_n in_o free_o save_v the_o elect._n the_o next_o and_o near_a final_a cause_n of_o our_o election_n be_v our_o justification_n when_o god_n do_v in_o his_o son_n free_o account_v we_o for_o righteous_a both_o which_o final_a cause_n the_o apostle_n comprise_v in_o these_o word_n he_o have_v predestinate_v we_o to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n wherewith_o he_o have_v make_v we_o free_o accept_v in_o his_o belove_a 1.6_o ephes_n 1.6_o likewise_o of_o the_o contrary_a the_o first_o final_a cause_n of_o reprobation_n be_v the_o declaration_n of_o god_n justice_n severity_n and_o hatred_n against_o sin_n in_o the_o reprobate_n 2.9_o rom._n 2.9_o god_n will_v to_o show_v his_o wrath_n and_o to_o make_v his_o power_n know_v suffer_v with_o long_a patience_n the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n prepare_v to_o destruction_n object_n 1._o god_n do_v foreknow_v our_o work_n therefore_o he_o choose_v we_o for_o our_o work_n ans_fw-fr he_o do_v foreknow_v those_o good_a thing_n which_o he_o purpose_v to_o work_v in_o we_o as_o also_o he_o foreknow_v the_o person_n otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o have_v foreknow_v any_o good_a work_n so_o can_v he_o not_o have_v foresee_v any_o evil_a except_o he_o have_v purpose_v to_o permit_v the_o same_o object_n 2._o whosoever_o god_n choose_v in_o christ_n they_o he_o find_v in_o christ_n for_o he_o in_o christ_n benefit_v none_o but_o those_o who_o be_v in_o christ_n 1.3_o ephes_n 1.3_o god_n choose_v we_o in_o christ_n therefore_o he_o find_v we_o in_o christ_n that_o be_v he_o foresee_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v accept_v of_o christ_n that_o we_o will_v believe_v rather_o than_o other_o and_o will_v become_v better_a than_o other_o and_o therefore_o he_o choose_v we_o answ_n we_o deny_v the_o major_n for_o the_o reason_n allege_v hold_v not_o true_a in_o election_n but_o in_o the_o effect_n of_o election_n and_o in_o the_o consummation_n of_o christ_n benefit_n which_o be_v impart_v unto_o none_o but_o such_o as_o be_v in_o
after_o this_o life_n but_o only_o desire_v to_o be_v rid_v of_o his_o present_a misery_n and_o therefore_o through_o humane_a infirmity_n and_o impatiency_n do_v compare_v the_o sense_n and_o feel_n of_o his_o present_a misery_n with_o the_o death_n and_o state_n of_o the_o dead_a whatsoever_o it_o be_v as_o they_o who_o be_v grievous_o torment_v with_o present_a distress_n and_o calamity_n prefer_v any_o thing_n whatsoever_o before_o that_o which_o they_o suffer_v so_o also_o chap._n 7._o he_o speak_v as_o one_o despair_v of_o delivery_n in_o this_o life_n 7.10_o chap._n 7_o 7.10_o remember_v that_o my_o life_n be_v but_o a_o wind_n and_o that_o my_o eye_n shall_v not_o return_v to_o see_v pleasure_n for_o so_o he_o expound_v himself_o when_o he_o add_v he_o shall_v return_v no_o more_o to_o his_o house_n neither_o shall_v his_o place_n know_v he_o any_o more_o so_o likewise_o chap._n 17._o my_o breath_n be_v corrupt_a 1._o verse_n 1._o and_o the_o grave_n be_v ready_a for_o i_o they_o be_v word_n of_o one_o despair_v of_o life_n and_o salvation_n god_n be_v wroth_a and_o angry_a but_o when_o it_o be_v say_v if_o he_o set_v his_o heart_n upon_o man_n and_o gather_v unto_o himself_o his_o spirit_n and_o his_o breath_n all_o flesh_n shall_v perish_v together_o 15._o chap._n 34.14_o 15._o it_o be_v not_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n do_v sleep_v or_o perish_v but_o that_o by_o the_o departure_n thereof_o the_o body_n die_v and_o be_v dissolve_v further_o they_o add_v if_o present_o after_o death_n the_o godly_a be_v bless_v than_o injury_n be_v do_v unto_o they_o who_o be_v call_v again_o into_o this_o mortal_a life_n but_o to_o this_o we_o answer_v that_o neither_o god_n can_v be_v injurious_a to_o any_o man_n whereas_o he_o be_v in_o no_o man_n debt_n neither_o can_v any_o thing_n happen_v better_a or_o more_o acceptable_a unto_o the_o godly_a then_o to_o serve_v for_o the_o manifest_v of_o god_n glory_n either_o by_o life_n or_o by_o death_n as_o it_o be_v say_v as_o always_o 1.20_o phil._n 1.20_o so_o now_o christ_n shall_v be_v magnify_v in_o my_o body_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o life_n or_o by_o death_n etc._n etc._n last_o of_o all_o if_o they_o say_v that_o the_o soul_n have_v neither_o sense_n nor_o action_n but_o by_o bodily_a instrument_n and_o therefore_o be_v naked_a and_o destitute_a of_o these_o be_v destitute_a also_o of_o sense_n motion_n and_o operation_n to_o grant_v unto_o they_o this_o antecedent_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v in_o the_o body_n yet_o notwithstanding_o of_o the_o soul_n free_v from_o the_o body_n both_o learned_a philosopher_n confess_v the_o contrary_a and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n testify_v the_o contrary_a as_o we_o know_v in_o part_n 13.9_o 1_o cor._n 13.9_o and_o we_o prophesy_v in_o part_n but_o when_o that_o which_o be_v perfect_a be_v come_v then_o that_o which_o be_v in_o part_n shall_v be_v abolish_v 2._o where_o and_o in_o what_o estate_n it_o abide_v be_v separate_a from_o the_o body_n the_o papist_n dream_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n pass_v out_o of_o their_o body_n into_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n there_o to_o be_v purge_v from_o their_o sin_n some_o soon_o some_o late_a ●_o not_o in_o purgatory_n as_o the_o papist_n teach_v li._n 4._o di_o 21._o cap._n ●_o according_a as_o they_o in_o their_o life_n time_n more_o or_o less_o love_v the_o transitory_a pelf_n of_o this_o world_n as_o lombard_n speak_v contrariwise_o the_o scripture_n teach_v we_o that_o not_o any_o fire_n after_o death_n but_o only_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o life_n cleanse_v our_o soul_n from_o all_o sin_n it_o far_o instruct_v we_o how_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a decease_a be_v not_o plunge_v into_o the_o place_n of_o torment_n there_o to_o be_v refine_v from_o the_o dross_n of_o their_o sin_n but_o be_v gather_v unto_o christ_n and_o into_o abraham_n bosom_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v forthwith_o cast_v into_o hell_n whence_o there_o be_v no_o retire_n and_o be_v now_o torment_v with_o infernal_a flame_n but_o yet_o reserve_v to_o more_o grievous_a torture_n of_o that_o everlasting_a fire_n which_o at_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n come_v to_o judgement_n 10.28_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o godly_a luke_n 23.46_o act_n 7.59_o luke_n 16.22_o phil._n 1.3_o 2_o cor._n 5.8_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o wicked_a mat._n 10.28_o the_o wrath_n of_o jehovah_n shall_v kindle_v of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o godly_a these_o place_n yield_v testimony_n into_o thy_o hand_n i_o commend_v my_o spirit_n lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o soul_n and_o so_o it_o be_v that_o the_o beggar_n die_v and_o be_v carry_v by_o the_o angel_n into_o abraham_n bosom_n therefore_o he_o fear_v not_o purgatory_n the_o faithful_a covet_v to_o remove_v out_o of_o the_o body_n and_o to_o dwell_v with_o the_o lord_n therefore_o they_o pass_v not_o through_o purgatory_n first_o before_o they_o approach_v unto_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o ungodly_a these_o place_n make_v sufficient_a evidence_n fear_v he_o who_o be_v able_a to_o cast_v both_o body_n and_o soul_n into_o hell_n fire_n the_o glutton_n straight_o after_o his_o burial_n be_v in_o hell_n torment_n and_o cry_v i_o be_o torment_v in_o this_o flame_n 16.23_o luke_n 16.23_o whence_o he_o shall_v never_o escape_v wherefore_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o wicked_a leave_v their_o body_n be_v not_o forthwith_o transport_v into_o purgatory_n whence_o there_o may_v be_v a_o gap_n or_o way_n to_o escape_v but_o be_v violent_o thrust_v down_o into_o the_o unspeakable_a fire_n of_o hell_n 3._o what_o the_o resurrection_n be_v and_o the_o error_n concern_v it_o the_o word_n resurrection_n signify_v sometime_o man_n spiritual_a conversion_n unto_o god_n 20.5_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n rev._n 20.5_o as_o this_o be_v the_o first_o resurrection_n but_o in_o this_o article_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v a_o restore_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o our_o body_n after_o death_n even_o of_o the_o same_o matter_n whereof_o they_o now_o consist_v and_o a_o revive_n and_o quicken_n of_o the_o same_o body_n with_o life_n immortal_a and_o incorruptible_a by_o the_o same_o immortal_a soul_n whereby_o they_o now_o live_v which_o god_n will_v work_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o his_o divine_a virtue_n and_o power_n which_o restore_v also_o shall_v be_v of_o the_o elect_a unto_o eternal_a glory_n it_o the_o part_n of_o it_o but_o of_o the_o reprobate_n unto_o eternal_a pain_n that_o be_v there_o shall_v be_v 1._o a_o restore_n of_o the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v a_o re-collecting_a and_o gather_v together_o of_o the_o same_o matter_n whereof_o our_o body_n be_v first_o compose_v and_o which_o after_o our_o death_n be_v scatter_v and_o sever_v into_o all_o the_o element_n 2._o a_o unite_n of_o it_o with_o the_o same_o soul_n and_o a_o revive_n of_o it_o by_o the_o same_o soul_n which_o it_o have_v before_o with_o a_o put_n off_o of_o all_o infirmity_n and_o a_o put_v on_o of_o immortality_n 3._o a_o glorify_v of_o the_o elect_n and_o a_o eternal_a rejection_n of_o the_o reprobare_fw-la resurrection_n three_o error_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n the_o error_n hold_v of_o the_o resurrection_n be_v of_o three_o sort_n 1._o some_o have_v utter_o deny_v it_o and_o have_v avouch_v the_o soul_n to_o die_v together_o with_o the_o body_n as_o the_o sadducee_n of_o who_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o the_o act_n the_o sadducee_n say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n 23.8_o act_n 23.8_o neither_o angel_n nor_o spirit_n 2._o some_o have_v grant_v the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n but_o have_v construe_v the_o resurrection_n to_o be_v a_o resurrection_n in_o this_o life_n mean_v by_o this_o resurrection_n nothing_o else_o but_o regeneration_n but_o the_o body_n they_o deny_v to_o rise_v at_o all_o although_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o godly_a have_v fruition_n after_o death_n of_o everlasting_a happiness_n hymeneus_n and_o philetus_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v author_n of_o this_o heresy_n of_o who_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2.18_o 2_o tim._n 2.18_o which_o as_o concern_v the_o truth_n have_v err_v say_v that_o the_o resurrection_n be_v pass_v already_o and_o do_v destroy_v the_o faith_n of_o some_o 3._o some_o as_o anabaptist_n deny_v that_o the_o very_a selfsame_o body_n which_o we_o now_o have_v shall_v rise_v again_o but_o they_o say_v that_o god_n at_o christ_n second_o come_v will_v make_v new_a body_n against_o all_o these_o error_n we_o be_v to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n affirm_v that_o the_o dead_a shall_v certain_o rise_v again_o 4._o whence_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v
be_v with_o in_o or_o under_o the_o bread_n they_o add_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o depart_v from_o true_a simplicity_n for_o if_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v be_v simple_o to_o be_v retain_v and_o that_o not_o to_o be_v admit_v which_o he_o say_v not_o then_o may_v we_o not_o say_v the_o bread_n be_v both_o bread_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o simple_o this_o only_a the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o he_o say_v not_o my_o body_n be_v with_o or_o in_o or_o under_o the_o bread_n or_o the_o bread_n be_v both_o bread_n and_o my_o body_n together_o neither_o add_v he_o as_o these_o add_v of_o their_o own_o real_o substantial_o corporal_o but_o he_o utter_v these_o bare_a word_n of_o the_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n neither_o have_v the_o transubstantiaries_n their_o opinion_n draw_v from_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n simple_o understand_v namely_o that_o of_o the_o bread_n be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o this_o be_v their_o own_o forgery_n and_o invention_n for_o christ_n say_v not_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v now_o make_v or_o be_v a_o make_n or_o shall_v be_v make_v but_o simple_o say_v the_o bread_n be_v my_o body_n where_o no_o change_n can_v come_v between_o so_o that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v simple_o understand_v therefore_o false_o do_v they_o persuade_v the_o people_n that_o they_o simple_o rest_v on_o the_o propriety_n of_o god_n word_n when_o as_o manifold_o and_o most_o far_o they_o swerve_v and_o depart_v from_o it_o word_n the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o christ_n word_n we_o protestant_n retain_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n without_o add_v or_o alter_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o indeed_o the_o true_a and_o visible_a body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o we_o but_o because_o these_o word_n literal_o take_v will_v admit_v a_o sense_n repugnant_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o christian_a faith_n for_o if_o bread_n be_v proper_o christ_n body_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o bread_n be_v crucify_v for_o we_o therefore_o we_o affirm_v that_o in_o christ_n word_n a_o convenient_a meaning_n must_v be_v inquire_v after_o that_o be_v christ_n word_n must_v be_v understand_v sacramental_o namely_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v call_v christ_n body_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o christ_n body_n the_o cup_n or_o wine_n in_o the_o cup_n be_v call_v christ_n blood_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o christ_n blood_n the_o cup_n be_v also_o call_v the_o new_a testament_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n even_o as_o baptism_n be_v term_v a_o wash_n away_o of_o sin_n and_o a_o laver_n of_o new_a birth_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o both_o these_o which_o be_v wrought_v proper_o by_o the_o blood_n and_o spirit_n of_o christ_n the_o true_a sense_n therefore_o and_o natural_a interpretation_n of_o christ_n word_n be_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o that_o be_v this_o bread_n break_v by_o i_o and_o give_v to_o you_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n deliver_v to_o death_n for_o you_o and_o a_o authentic_a seal_n of_o your_o conjunction_n with_o i_o so_o that_o he_o which_o shall_v believe_v and_o eat_v this_o bread_n he_o true_o and_o real_o after_o a_o sort_n eat_v my_o body_n here_o therefore_o to_o the_o sign_n be_v attribute_v the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v both_o for_o the_o conjunction_n which_o the_o thing_n signify_v have_v in_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o supper_n with_o the_o sign_n and_o also_o for_o the_o proportion_n which_o the_o sign_n have_v with_o the_o thing_n signify_v in_o this_o exposition_n we_o be_v not_o lead_v and_o overrule_v by_o philosophy_n and_o humane_a reason_n as_o our_o adversary_n traduce_v we_o and_o bear_v the_o world_n in_o hand_n we_o be_v but_o we_o observe_v those_o rule_n by_o which_o in_o the_o joint_a consent_n of_o all_o sound_a wise_a man_n we_o be_v to_o censure_v the_o interpretation_n of_o any_o scripture_n whatsoever_o namely_o by_o the_o analogy_n and_o rule_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n or_o subject_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n which_o teach_v the_o same_o thing_n scripture_n three_o rule_n whereby_o we_o may_v judge_v of_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n for_o by_o help_n of_o these_o three_o rule_n the_o natural_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v examine_v as_o often_o as_o necessity_n drive_v we_o from_o the_o letter_n to_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n 1._o that_o no_o interpretation_n be_v receive_v dissonant_n from_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o repugnant_a to_o any_o article_n thereof_o or_o any_o commandment_n of_o the_o decalogue_n or_o any_o express_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o itself_o 2._o that_o the_o sense_n derive_v out_o of_o word_n signify_v any_o thing_n have_v a_o congruity_n with_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o word_n as_o in_o this_o present_a subject_n of_o the_o supper_n whereon_o we_o insist_v when_o any_o question_n or_o doubt_n be_v move_v therein_o we_o be_v to_o inquire_v see_v it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n how_o the_o scripture_n elsewhere_o speak_v of_o sacrament_n and_o of_o the_o supper_n itself_o 3._o that_o other_o like_a place_n be_v weigh_v and_o consider_v by_o which_o it_o be_v either_o manifest_a and_o grant_v or_o may_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o some_o circumstance_n that_o they_o contain_v the_o same_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o place_n in_o controversy_n for_o if_o we_o be_v full_o resolve_v of_o the_o meaning_n of_o any_o clear_a and_o uncontroversed_a place_n we_o shall_v also_o be_v resolve_v of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n in_o controversy_n if_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v deliver_v in_o both_o so_o than_o it_o be_v out_o of_o doubt_n that_o that_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o supper_n which_o be_v agreeable_a with_o these_o rule_n be_v true_a and_o those_o untrue_a which_o disagree_v from_o they_o but_o this_o our_o construe_v and_o interpretation_n which_o indeed_o be_v not_o we_o but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n himself_o his_o apostle_n and_o all_o orthodox_n or_o right-beleeving_a antiquity_n do_v every_o way_n suit_n with_o these_o rule_n wherefore_o undoubted_o it_o be_v most_o true_a and_o best_a beseem_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o argument_n by_o which_o we_o prove_v our_o interpretation_n to_o be_v true_a they_o be_v of_o four_o sort_n 1._o some_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o text_n itself_o and_o circumstance_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n 2._o some_o be_v take_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n or_o subject_n that_o be_v by_o understand_v the_o speech_n as_o the_o thing_n itself_o do_v bear_v and_o suffer_v namely_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o all_o sacrament_n 3._o some_o be_v draw_v from_o a_o analogy_n of_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n or_o from_o a_o conference_n of_o place_n or_o part_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n 4._o some_o be_v take_v from_o other_o like_a place_n of_o scripture_n where_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v deliver_v in_o such_o word_n as_o be_v manifest_a and_o whereof_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n 1._o the_o first_o sort_n of_o argument_n take_v out_o of_o the_o text_n and_o circumstance_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n down_o he_o sit_v down_o 1._o christs_n humane_a nature_n at_o the_o first_o celebrate_v of_o the_o supper_n by_o a_o corporal_a kind_n of_o place_v sit_v in_o his_o proper_a place_n at_o the_o table_n and_o now_o be_v in_o heaven_n wherefore_o then_o it_o be_v not_o neither_o be_v it_o now_o corporal_o in_o the_o bread_n or_o in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o bread_n bread_n he_o take_v bread_n 2._o christ_n at_o the_o first_o supper_n take_v not_o into_o his_o hand_n nor_o break_v his_o body_n but_o bread_n wherefore_o bread_n be_v not_o proper_o and_o real_o the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n body_n this_o be_v my_o body_n 3._o christ_n body_n be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n but_o bread_n be_v make_v of_o meal_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o real_o christ_n body_n 4._o christ_n say_v of_o the_o visible_a bread_n be_v break_v this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o of_o the_o visible_a cup_n be_v distribute_v unto_o his_o disciple_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n therefore_o the_o papist_n retain_v not_o the_o letter_n when_o they_o say_v my_o body_n be_v contain_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n nor_o the_o ubiquitaries_n when_o they_o thus_o speak_v my_o body_n be_v in_o with_o under_o this_o
civil_a as_o that_o the_o seven_o day_n be_v to_o be_v allot_v for_o the_o ministry_n and_o service_n of_o god_n that_o the_o ten_o and_o first-fruit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o priest_n that_o adulterer_n be_v to_o be_v stone_v that_o thief_n be_v to_o be_v amerce_v with_o a_o fourfold_a restitution_n 6._o the_o ceremonial_a and_o the_o civil_a law_n also_o be_v type_n or_o figure_n of_o other_o thing_n for_o who_o cause_n they_o be_v ordain_v the_o moral_a signify_v or_o prefigure_v nothing_o but_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n 7._o the_o moral_a be_v the_o end_n for_o which_o other_o law_n be_v to_o be_v make_v or_o they_o be_v the_o principal_a service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n the_o ceremonial_a and_o civil_a serve_v for_o the_o moral_a ordinance_n that_o to_o they_o obedience_n may_v be_v right_o and_o due_o perform_v that_o a_o certain_a time_n and_o certain_a rite_n may_v be_v observe_v in_o the_o public_a ministry_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o ministry_n itself_o may_v be_v maintain_v and_o preserve_v 8._o the_o ceremonial_a give_v place_n unto_o the_o moral_a the_o moral_a give_v not_o place_n unto_o the_o ceremonial_a the_o moral_a law_n the_o natural_a and_o decalogue_n differ_v the_o decalogue_n be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n decalogue_n what_o difference_n be_v between_o the_o moral_a law_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o decalogue_n which_o be_v scatter_v through_o the_o whole_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n the_o natural_a law_n do_v not_o differ_v from_o the_o moral_a in_o nature_n not_o corrupt_v but_o in_o nature_n corrupt_v a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o natural_a law_n be_v darken_v by_o sin_n and_o but_o a_o little_a part_n only_o concern_v the_o obedience_n due_a to_o god_n be_v leave_v remain_v in_o man_n mind_n after_o the_o fall_n for_o which_o cause_n also_o god_n have_v in_o his_o church_n repeat_v again_o and_o declare_v the_o whole_a sentence_n and_o doctrine_n of_o his_o law_n in_o the_o decalogue_n therefore_o the_o decalogue_n be_v a_o restore_n and_o re-enter_v or_o reinforce_a the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v a_o part_n only_o of_o the_o decalogue_n the_o distinction_n of_o these_o law_n be_v to_o be_v know_v both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o same_o without_o the_o knowledge_n whereof_o their_o force_n and_o meaning_n can_v be_v understand_v and_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o abrogate_a and_o last_o for_o the_o knowledge_n and_o understanding_n of_o their_o use_n 4._o how_o far_o the_o law_n be_v and_o be_v not_o abrogate_a by_o christ_n the_o common_a and_o true_a answer_n to_o this_o demand_n be_v that_o moses_n ceremonial_a and_o civil_a law_n be_v abrogate_a as_o touch_v obedience_n and_o the_o moral_a law_n also_o as_o concern_v the_o curse_n thereof_o but_o not_o as_o concern_v obedience_n thereunto_o hereof_o the_o ceremonial_a and_o civil_a be_v abrogated_a as_o touch_v their_o obedience_n and_o the_o reason_n hereof_o that_o the_o ceremonial_a and_o civil_a or_o judicial_a law_n be_v so_o abrogate_a by_o christ_n come_n that_o they_o now_o bind_v none_o unto_o obedience_n and_o in_o our_o time_n carry_v no_o show_n of_o law_n be_v prove_v 110._o dan._n 9.27_o psal_n 110._o 1._o because_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n foretell_v of_o this_o their_o abrogation_n and_o cancel_v christ_n shall_v confirm_v the_o covenant_n with_o many_o for_o one_o week_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o week_n he_o shall_v cause_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o oblation_n to_o cease_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n 2._o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v express_o decipher_v this_o abrogation_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a and_o judicial_a law_n 29._o act_n 7.8_o heb._n 7.11_o 12_o 13_o 18._o &_o 8.8_o 9_o 10_o 11_o 12_o 13._o act_n 15.28_o 29._o and_o in_o stead_n of_o many_o testimony_n it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o allege_v that_o one_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n council_n it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o to_o lay_v no_o more_o burden_n on_o you_o than_o these_o necessary_a thing_n 3._o the_o cause_n be_v alter_v the_o law_n also_o depend_v thereon_o be_v alter_v but_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a and_o civil_a law_n be_v one_o that_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n of_o who_o christ_n be_v come_v may_v by_o this_o form_n of_o worship_n and_o regiment_n be_v distinguish_v from_o other_o nation_n until_o his_o come_n another_o that_o they_o may_v be_v type_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o his_o benefit_n both_o which_o cause_n have_v now_o cease_v since_o the_o exhibit_v of_o the_o messiah_n 1._o the_o distinction_n of_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v now_o take_v away_o he_o be_v our_o peace_n which_o have_v make_v of_o both_o one_o 2.14_o ephes_n 2.14_o and_o have_v break_v the_o stop_n of_o the_o partition_n wall_n in_o abrogate_a through_o his_o flesh_n the_o hatred_n that_o be_v the_o law_n of_o commandment_n which_o stand_v in_o ordinance_n in_o christ_n neither_o circumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n 15_o gal._n ●_o 15_o nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o a_o new_a creature_n 2._o that_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o ceremony_n be_v fulfil_v by_o christ_n be_v every_o where_o teach_v 16._o heb._n 9.8_o luke_n 6.16_o col._n 2_o 16._o whereby_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o signify_v that_o the_o way_n unto_o the_o holy_a of_o all_o be_v not_o yet_o open_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n endure_v until_o john_n let_v no_o man_n condemn_v you_o in_o meat_n and_o drink_n against_o the_o abrogation_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n the_o jew_n thus_o object_n object_n 1._o moses_n religious_a order_n or_o worship_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o commandment_n annex_v to_o they_o 31.16_o acceptation_n of_o jewish_a objection_n against_o this_o doctrine_n gen._n 1●_n 13_o exod._n 12.24_o psalm_n 132.15_o exod._n 31.16_o to_o continue_v for_o ever_o and_o the_o jewish_a kingdom_n by_o god_n promise_n circumcision_n be_v a_o everlasting_a covenant_n the_o passeover_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v holy_a by_o a_o ordinance_n for_o ever_o this_o be_v my_o rest_n for_o ever_o the_o sabbath_n be_v a_o everlasting_a covenant_n thy_o throne_n o_o god_n endure_v for_o ever_o therefore_o moses_n form_n of_o religion_n and_o polity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v repeal_v by_o christ_n ans_fw-fr in_o this_o argument_n the_o fallacy_n of_o take_v that_o to_o be_v simple_o aver_v which_o be_v speak_v but_o in_o part_n be_v twice_o use_v for_o the_o major_a proposition_n treat_v of_o a_o absolute_a perpetuity_n the_o minor_a of_o a_o restrain_a and_o limit_a perpetuity_n since_o that_o in_o the_o testimony_n allege_v a_o infinite_a or_o unlimited_a perpetuity_n of_o the_o jewish_a ceremony_n and_o kingdom_n be_v not_o promise_v but_o a_o continuance_n until_o christ_n who_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v after_o moses_n for_o the_o particle_n holam_fw-la signify_v every_o where_n in_o scripture_n not_o eternity_n but_o the_o continuance_n of_o a_o long_a and_o yet_o definite_a time_n so_o be_v it_o use_v in_o that_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o he_o shall_v serve_v he_o for_o ever_o that_o be_v until_o the_o year_n of_o jubilee_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o conference_n of_o that_o law_n 21.6_o exod._n 21.6_o with_o the_o law_n touch_v the_o year_n of_o jubilee_n enroll_v and_o register_v levit._n 25.40_o again_o to_o grant_v that_o which_o they_o urge_v in_o their_o minor_n that_o a_o absolute_a perpetuity_n be_v promise_v in_o the_o fore-rehearsed_n quotation_n yet_o this_o perpetuity_n be_v not_o of_o the_o type_n and_o shadow_n themselves_o but_o of_o the_o spiritual_a thing_n signify_v and_o figure_v by_o they_o to_o wit_n that_o their_o truth_n shall_v endure_v for_o ever_o in_o the_o church_n yea_o though_o the_o sign_n and_o shadow_n be_v by_o christ_n abolish_v for_o thus_o do_v circumcision_n continue_v unto_o this_o day_n and_o thus_o be_v there_o a_o perpetual_a sabbath_n in_o christ_n kingdom_n and_o shall_v be_v perpetual_a in_o life_n everlasting_a last_o thus_o the_o kingdom_n of_o david_n be_v establish_v for_o everlasting_a in_o the_o throne_n of_o christ_n object_n 2._o the_o worship_n which_o lizekiel_n in_o his_o forty_o chapter_n and_o so_o forth_o to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o prophecy_n describe_v pertain_v to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o be_v therein_o to_o be_v retain_v but_o that_o worship_n be_v mere_o typical_a and_o ceremonial_a therefore_o a_o typical_a and_o ceremonial_a kind_n of_o worship_n be_v to_o be_v retain_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o messiah_n whence_o this_o inference_n be_v good_a that_o the_o jewish_a religion_n and_o polity_n or_o form_n of_o government_n be_v not_o to_o be_v abolish_v but_o reform_v rather_o
why_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n belong_v not_o unto_o we_o be_v especial_o these_o 1._o one_o part_n of_o this_o law_n of_o sanctify_v the_o sabbath_n be_v ceremonial_a 2.16_o col._n 2.16_o 2._o paul_n say_v let_v no_o man_n condemn_v you_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o holy_a day_n 3._o the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v change_v the_o sabbath_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n 4._o from_o the_o end_n or_o purpose_n of_o the_o law_n it_o be_v a_o type_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v fulfil_v by_o christ_n namely_o of_o sanctification_n and_o every_o type_n must_v give_v place_n to_o the_o thing_n thereby_o signify_v likewise_o it_o be_v a_o sever_n or_o distinguish_v the_o jew_n from_o other_o nation_n but_o this_o sever_n and_o distinction_n be_v take_v away_o by_o christ_n object_n 3._o the_o lord_n say_v of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n 31.27_o exod._n 31.27_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n between_o i_o and_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n for_o ever_o and_o a_o everlasting_a covenant_n therefore_o the_o sabbath_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n be_v never_o to_o be_v abolish_v ans_fw-fr 1._o the_o ceremonial_a sabbath_n be_v perpetual_a until_o christ_n come_n who_o be_v the_o end_n of_o ceremony_n 2._o the_o sabbath_n be_v eternal_a as_o concern_v the_o thing_n signify_v which_o be_v a_o cease_n from_o sin_n and_o a_o rest_n in_o god_n for_o in_o this_o sense_n be_v all_o the_o type_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n eternal_a even_o the_o kingdom_n of_o david_n also_o which_o yet_o be_v overthrow_v before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n object_n 4._o we_o grant_v the_o mosaical_a ceremony_n to_o be_v changeable_a yet_o it_o follow_v not_o thereof_o 2._o look_v the_o question_n concern_v the_o abrogate_a of_o the_o law_n ob._n 1._o pag._n 2._o that_o the_o law_n which_o be_v make_v before_o moses_n time_n be_v changeable_a in_o the_o number_n whereof_o also_o be_v the_o keep_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n answ_n the_o ceremony_n which_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n before_o moses_n be_v also_o changeable_a because_o they_o be_v type_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o messiah_n to_o come_v and_o therefore_o be_v by_o his_o come_n abolish_v as_o circumcision_n which_o be_v give_v unto_o abraham_n as_o also_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v prescribe_v unto_o our_o first_o parent_n object_n 5._o the_o law_n which_o be_v give_v of_o god_n before_o the_o fall_n be_v not_o type_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o bind_v all_o mankind_n for_o ever_o for_o than_o be_v not_o give_v as_o yet_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o there_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o condition_n of_o all_o mankind_n but_o the_o sabbath_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n as_o soon_o as_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v finish_v before_o the_o fall_n of_o mankind_n therefore_o it_o be_v universal_a and_o perpetual_a ans_fw-fr the_o major_a proposition_n be_v true_a concern_v the_o moral_a law_n the_o notion_n whereof_o be_v imprint_v in_o man_n mind_n at_o the_o first_o creation_n but_o it_o be_v not_o true_a as_o touch_v the_o ceremony_n or_o observe_v of_o the_o seven_o day_n as_o which_o after_o the_o fall_n be_v make_v a_o type_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o messiah_n in_o the_o mosaical_a law_n and_o therefore_o in_o like_a manner_n as_o other_o ceremony_n which_o be_v either_o then_o or_o before_o institute_v it_o become_v subject_a to_o mutation_n and_o change_n by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n for_o god_n will_v not_o have_v the_o shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o continue_v or_o remain_v the_o thing_n themselves_o be_v once_o come_v and_o exhibit_v wherefore_o albeit_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o exercise_n of_o divine_a worship_n be_v to_o have_v be_v keep_v on_o the_o seven_o day_n according_a to_o the_o commandment_n and_o prescript_n of_o the_o decalogue_n as_o well_o if_o man_n have_v never_o sin_v as_o now_o after_o they_o sin_v yet_o notwithstanding_o see_v god_n have_v enroll_v this_o ceremony_n among_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o messiah_n to_o come_v he_o have_v by_o this_o new_a law_n enact_v by_o moses_n make_v it_o changeable_a together_o with_o other_o ceremony_n object_n 6._o the_o cause_n of_o the_o law_n be_v perpetual_a do_v make_v the_o law_n itself_o also_o perpetual_a the_o memory_n and_o celebration_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o the_o meditation_n on_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v a_o perpetual_a cause_n of_o the_o sabbath_n therefore_o the_o sabbath_n be_v perpetual_a yea_o even_o after_o christ_n come_v ans_fw-fr a_o law_n be_v make_v perpetual_a or_o unchangeable_a by_o reason_n of_o a_o unchangeable_a cause_n that_o be_v if_o that_o cause_n it_o and_o do_v necessary_o or_o perpetual_o require_v this_o law_n as_o a_o effect_n or_o mean_v but_o not_o if_o at_o other_o time_n that_o end_n may_v be_v better_o come_v unto_o by_o other_o mean_n or_o if_o the_o lawgiver_n may_v as_o well_o obtain_v the_o same_o end_n by_o another_o law_n in_o like_a manner_n see_v also_o this_o law_n of_o sanctify_v the_o sabbath_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n be_v repeal_v and_o abolish_v we_o may_v nevertheless_o godly_o and_o holy_o by_o other_o mean_n meditate_v on_o god_n work_n it_o follow_v not_o that_o this_o law_n of_o the_o ceremonial_a sabbath_n be_v perpetual_a although_o the_o memory_n and_o celebration_n of_o god_n creation_n and_o work_n ought_v to_o be_v perpetual_a and_o therefore_o have_v the_o church_n by_o common_a consent_n according_a to_o christian_a liberty_n well_o change_v this_o ceremony_n of_o observe_v the_o seven_o day_n be_v take_v away_o by_o christ_n and_o have_v substitute_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o seven_o day_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n yet_o so_o that_o there_o be_v observe_v no_o difference_n of_o day_n which_o be_v utter_o forbid_v in_o the_o church_n see_v one_o day_n be_v not_o holy_a than_o another_o the_o anabaptist_n also_o against_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n 14.6_o objecti_fw-la against_o the_o observe_n of_o sunday_n or_o the_o lord_n day_n col._n 2.16_o galat._n 4.10_o rom._n 14.6_o or_o the_o lord_n day_n oppose_v those_o say_n of_o scripture_n which_o forbid_v the_o put_n of_o difference_n between_o day_n and_o day_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n let_v no_o man_n condemn_v you_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o holy_a day_n you_o observe_v day_n and_o month_n and_o time_n and_o year_n he_o that_o observe_v the_o day_n observe_v it_o to_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o that_o observe_v not_o the_o day_n observe_v it_o not_o to_o the_o lord_n therefore_o say_v they_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n or_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v no_o less_o in_o these_o place_n reprove_v than_o the_o solemnize_n of_o the_o sabbath_n ans_fw-fr we_o answer_v to_o the_o antecedent_n that_o a_o put_v difference_n between_o day_n and_o day_n be_v indeed_o forbid_a among_o christian_n but_o not_o simple_o or_o whole_o but_o on_o this_o wise_a namely_o if_o it_o be_v do_v with_o a_o opinion_n of_o ceremonious_a worship_n or_o necessity_n now_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n or_o the_o lord_n day_n be_v not_o so_o observe_v by_o the_o church_n for_o there_o be_v a_o double_a difference_n between_o the_o christian_a observe_v of_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o the_o jewish_a observe_v of_o the_o sabbath_n or_o seven_o day_n sabbath_n a_o double_a difference_n between_o the_o christian_a observe_v of_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o the_o jewish_a observe_v of_o the_o sabbath_n for_o 1._o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o jew_n to_o change_v the_o sabbath_n or_o to_o omit_v it_o as_o be_v a_o part_n of_o ceremonial_a worship_n and_o this_o they_o may_v not_o do_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o express_a commandment_n of_o god_n to_o the_o contrary_n but_o the_o christian_a church_n retain_v still_o her_o liberty_n allot_v the_o first_o day_n unto_o the_o ministry_n without_o adjoin_v any_o opinion_n of_o necessity_n or_o worship_n 2._o the_o old_a ceremonial_a sabbath_n be_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n a_o type_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v fulfil_v by_o christ_n but_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o signification_n cease_v and_o there_o be_v have_v regard_n only_o of_o order_n and_o comeliness_n without_o which_o there_o can_v be_v either_o no_o ministry_n or_o at_o least_o wise_a no_o well_o order_v ministry_n in_o the_o church_n 3._o the_o cause_n for_o which_o the_o sabbath_n day_n be_v institute_v the_o final_a cause_n or_o end_n for_o which_o the_o sabbath_n day_n be_v institute_v be_v these_o church_n for_o public_a service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n the_o public_a service_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n exercise_n of_o prayer_n confession_n and_o obedience_n in_o which_o consist_v the_o study_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o
what_o the_o highness_n of_o the_o divinity_n be_v abase_v what_o it_o be_v that_o flesh_n without_o the_o word_n act_v not_o what_o it_o be_v that_o the_o word_n without_o the_o flesh_n effect_v not_o cyrillus_n thes_n l._n 10._o c._n 11._o therefore_o even_o as_o when_o he_o wrought_v miracle_n by_o the_o flesh_n we_o do_v not_o attribute_v those_o thing_n to_o he_o as_o man_n but_o as_o god_n so_o when_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n he_o speak_v any_o thing_n of_o himself_o which_o seem_v inconsonant_a to_o his_o divinity_n we_o ought_v to_o attribute_v that_o to_o his_o flesh_n for_o so_o by_o a_o congruous_a distribution_n of_o all_o his_o word_n and_o work_n we_o shall_v not_o deviate_v from_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o our_o saviour_n v._o if_o we_o consider_v the_o property_n of_o both_o nature_n in_o the_o personal_a union_n for_o out_o of_o this_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o abstract_n that_o be_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o nature_n they_o can_v be_v change_v no_o more_o than_o the_o nature_n themselves_o for_o we_o must_v not_o say_v the_o deity_n be_v the_o humanity_n or_o man_n or_o create_v corporeal_a visible_a finite_a circumscribe_v dead_a bury_v etc._n etc._n neither_o can_v we_o say_v the_o humanity_n be_v the_o deity_n or_o god_n or_o eternal_a uncreated_a incorporeal_a invisible_a infinite_a omnipresent_v omnipotent_a etc._n etc._n but_o we_o must_v attribute_v to_o each_o nature_n what_o proper_o belong_v to_o it_o to_o the_o divinity_n the_o divine_a property_n to_o the_o humanity_n the_o humane_a without_o this_o the_o essential_a difference_n of_o the_o nature_n be_v confound_v and_o be_v change_v into_o a_o eutychian_a and_o swenkfieldian_a mingle_v of_o nature_n for_o in_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o property_n consist_v the_o distinction_n of_o the_o nature_n and_o so_o the_o two_o nature_n which_o have_v the_o same_o property_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o nature_n or_o by_o communication_n shall_v be_v no_o long_o two_o nature_n but_o one_o nature_n a_o only_a for_o it_o can_v be_v that_o one_o nature_n together_o can_v contain_v two_o contrary_a b_o property_n testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n a_o damascen_n l._n 3._o c._n 14._o &_o 15._o who_o nature_n be_v the_o same_o their_o will_n and_o action_n be_v the_o same_o but_o their_o will_n and_o action_n be_v different_a who_o nature_n be_v different_a and_o again_o who_o will_n and_o action_n be_v the_o same_o their_o nature_n be_v the_o same_o but_o who_o will_n and_o action_n be_v different_a their_o nature_n be_v also_o different_a b_o ibid._n 3._o c._n 3._o how_o can_v the_o same_o nature_n according_a to_o the_o same_o respect_n be_v both_o create_v and_o uncreated_a mortal_a and_o immortal_a circumscribe_v and_o uncircumscribed_a theodoret_n dial._n 11._o if_o christ_n be_v only_o one_o nature_n how_o can_v contrary_n be_v attribute_v to_o he_o for_o to_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n and_o to_o take_v beginning_n from_o abraham_n and_o david_n be_v altogether_o contrary_n vi_o hence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n remain_v not_o but_o be_v change_v into_o the_o divinity_n and_o so_o that_o nature_n be_v confound_v also_o that_o in_o christ_n there_o remain_v not_o the_o two_o distinct_a nature_n but_o that_o the_o two_o be_v change_v into_o one_o if_o these_o position_n be_v true_a that_o the_o humanity_n in_o and_o by_o the_o personal_a union_n do_v assume_v with_o the_o word_n all_o the_o property_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o word_n that_o it_o be_v and_o operate_v all_o which_o the_o word_n be_v and_o operate_v that_o it_o be_v invisible_a uncircumscribed_a omnipresent_v etc._n etc._n let_v these_o position_n be_v palliate_v which_o way_n you_o will_n yea_o so_o much_o the_o rather_o if_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o in_o the_o humanity_n there_o be_v three_o sort_n of_o property_n to_o wit_n supernatural_a preternatural_a and_o divine_a and_o therefore_o we_o reject_v these_o subsequent_a doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_n and_o modern_a heretic_n as_o unknown_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n as_o 1._o that_o christ_n be_v not_o true_o god_n but_o mere_o man._n 2._o that_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o deity_n be_v only_o a_o spirit_n create_v before_o all_o that_o have_v be_v make_v of_o nothing_o 3._o that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o true_a and_o perfect_a man_n of_o the_o same_o soul_n and_o body_n with_o we_o remain_v also_o in_o glory_n 4._o that_o in_o christ_n there_o be_v one_o person_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n another_o of_o the_o son_n of_o mary_n 5._o that_o the_o personal_a union_n begin_v in_o the_o mother_n womb_n but_o by_o the_o resurrection_n ascension_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n have_v its_o perfect_a consummation_n by_o equal_v the_o two_o nature_n in_o glory_n so_o that_o the_o flesh_n body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v perfect_o of_o one_o essence_n power_n and_o efficacy_n with_o god_n and_o with_o the_o word_n 6._o that_o christ_n humanity_n be_v equal_a with_o god_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n communicate_v to_o it_o but_o in_o the_o nature_n thereof_o be_v not_o god_n 7._o that_o the_o specifical_a difference_n of_o the_o union_n be_v the_o real_a communication_n of_o all_o the_o divine_a property_n with_o the_o humanity_n so_o that_o the_o omnipotency_n omnipresence_n justice_n and_o majesty_n of_o the_o word_n be_v real_o diffuse_v into_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 8._o that_o in_o christ_n there_o be_v a_o double_a deity_n the_o one_o communicate_v and_o the_o other_o communicate_v or_o the_o one_o participate_v and_o the_o other_o participate_v 9_o that_o the_o specifical_a difference_n of_o the_o inhabitation_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o man_n christ_n and_o in_o other_o holy_a man_n be_v place_v in_o this_o that_o only_o some_o of_o the_o divine_a property_n be_v true_o communicate_v to_o the_o saint_n but_o they_o be_v all_o bestow_v on_o the_o man_n christ_n 10._o that_o christ_n humanity_n be_v real_o everywhere_o yet_o not_o the_o essence_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o body_n 11._o that_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v god_n 12._o that_o the_o man_n christ_n be_v not_o god_n natural_a 13._o that_o christ_n humane_a nature_n do_v visible_o die_v on_o the_o cross_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o be_v invisible_o dead_a and_o alive_a everywhere_o within_o and_o without_o the_o sepulchre_n before_o and_o after_o the_o resurrection_n 14._o that_o christ_n flesh_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o union_n with_o the_o word_n which_o be_v illocall_a have_v far_o surmount_v all_o locality_n and_o have_v obtain_v a_o illocall_a kind_n of_o existence_n in_o the_o word_n 15._o add_v this_o falsehood_n of_o the_o ubiquitaries_n that_o not_o all_o but_o half_a christ_n be_v suffer_v do_v that_o which_o christ_n be_v suffer_v and_o do_v according_a to_o either_o nature_n and_o not_o according_a to_o both_o upon_o this_o ground_n they_o have_v false_o accuse_v the_o nestorian_a church_n of_o nestorianisme_n for_o it_o will_v necessary_o follow_v that_o only_o half_a christ_n from_o eternity_n be_v beget_v of_o the_o father_n bear_v of_o mary_n walk_v on_o the_o earth_n die_v for_o we_o be_v bury_v rise_v again_o and_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n which_o opinion_n we_o condemn_v and_o reject_v as_o heretical_a article_n ii_o of_o christ_n death_n and_o merit_n i._o we_o believe_v that_o christ_n our_o redeemer_n do_v true_o ah_o die_v in_o the_o b_o flesh_n for_o our_o c_o sin_n and_o that_o with_o one_o oblation_n he_o have_v for_o ever_o consecrate_v those_o who_o be_v d_o sanctify_v testimony_n of_o scripture_n a_o mat._n 27.50_o when_o jesus_n again_o cry_v with_o a_o great_a voice_n he_o give_v up_o his_o spirit_n b_o 1_o pet._n 3.18_o christ_n be_v mortify_v in_o the_o flesh_n 1_o pet._n 4.1_o see_v then_o christ_n have_v suffer_v for_o we_o in_o the_o flesh_n c_o rom._n 4.25_o christ_n be_v deliver_v to_o death_n for_o our_o offence_n d_o heb._n 10.14_o christ_n with_o one_o oblation_n have_v consecrate_v for_o ever_o those_o that_o be_v sanctify_v ii_o we_o believe_v also_o that_o this_o death_n of_o christ_n alone_o be_v a_o perfect_a and_o sufficient_a ransom_n to_o expiate_v and_o abolish_v all_o the_o a_o sin_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o justice_n be_v immense_a that_o the_o medicine_n of_o his_o death_n be_v universal_a the_o ever-flowing_a and_o inexhausted_a spring_n of_o life_n b_o eternal_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n a_o act_n 4.12_o nor_o be_v there_o salvation_n in_o any_o other_o nor_o be_v there_o any_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n which_o be_v give_v among_o man_n by_o which_o they_o can_v be_v save_v b_o john_n 1.29_o behold_v that_o lamb_n of_o god_n who_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n
his_o body_n into_o heaven_n not_o carry_v away_o his_o majesty_n from_o the_o g_o world_n because_o though_o he_o be_v absent_a in_o his_o body_n present_v himself_o to_o the_o father_n for_o we_o and_o sit_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n he_o yet_o dwell_v in_o the_o saint_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o suffer_v they_o not_o to_o be_v orphan_n as_o religious_a antiquity_n h_o speak_v testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n a_o heb._n 9.12_o christ_n by_o his_o own_o blood_n have_v enter_v once_o into_o the_o holy_a place_n have_v obtain_v eternal_a redemption_n b_o act_n 1.3_o after_o christ_n have_v suffer_v he_o show_v himself_o alive_a to_o his_o disciple_n with_o many_o certain_a sign_n be_v see_v of_o they_o for_o 40._o day_n c_o act_n 1.11_o then_o the_o apostle_n return_v to_o jerusalem_n from_o the_o mount_n call_v olivet_n which_o be_v near_o to_o jerusalem_n be_v distant_a a_o sabbath_n day_n journey_n d_o act_n 1.9_o and_o when_o he_o have_v speak_v these_o thing_n while_o they_o behold_v he_o be_v take_v up_o and_o a_o cloud_n receive_v he_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n e_z austin_n tract_n in_o john_n 50._o according_a to_o the_o flesh_n which_o the_o word_n assume_v according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v apprehend_v by_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v fasten_v to_o the_o tree_n which_o be_v take_v down_o from_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v wrap_v in_o linen_n which_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n which_o be_v manifest_v in_o the_o resurrection_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v he_o always_o with_o you_o why_o because_o he_o converse_v according_a to_o his_o bodily_a presence_n 40._o day_n with_o the_o disciple_n and_o they_o accompany_v he_o by_o see_v not_o by_o follow_v he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o be_v not_o here_o chrysost_n serm._n de_fw-fr ascens_fw-la domini_fw-la tom._n 2._o p._n 328._o because_o the_o space_n from_o earth_n to_o heaven_n be_v great_a and_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o eye_n can_v not_o thorough_o perceive_v the_o body_n that_o be_v carry_v unto_o such_o a_o altitude_n but_o as_o our_o eyesight_n fail_v we_o when_o we_o look_v upon_o a_o bird_n mount_v high_a so_o the_o high_a that_o body_n be_v elevate_v the_o more_o be_v the_o sight_n of_o the_o beholder_n eye_n weaken_v nature_n not_o be_v able_a to_o reach_v high_o with_o the_o eye_n therefore_o the_o angel_n stand_v show_v the_o celestial_a journey_n lest_o any_o shall_v suppose_v but_o that_o he_o be_v carry_v up_o into_o heaven_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o elias_n who_o be_v elevate_v thither_o from_o you_o ibid._n see_v what_o space_n be_v between_o heaven_n and_o earth_n or_o between_o earth_n and_o hell_n or_o how_o far_o this_o heaven_n be_v distant_a from_o the_o high_a heaven_n or_o how_o great_a the_o space_n be_v from_o the_o high_a heaven_n to_o the_o angel_n or_o from_o the_o high_a power_n to_o the_o seat_n of_o our_o lord_n above_o all_o these_o be_v our_o nature_n elevate_v that_o man_n who_o be_v here_o so_o low_a that_o he_o can_v descend_v no_o low_o shall_v be_v elevate_v unto_o such_o a_o high_a seat_n that_o he_o can_v ascend_v no_o high_o therefore_o paul_n say_v he_o that_o ascend_v be_v he_o also_o that_o descend_v ibid._n he_o descend_v into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o ascend_v above_o all_o heaven_n f_z john_n 16.28_o again_o i_o leave_v the_o world_n and_o go_v to_o the_o father_n g_o august_n tract_n in_o joh._n 102._o he_o leave_v the_o world_n by_o a_o corporal_a departure_n he_o go_v to_o the_o father_n by_o a_o corporal_a ascension_n nor_o do_v he_o forsake_v the_o world_n by_o his_o presentiall_a government_n idem_fw-la tract_n in_o joh._n 50._o the_o priest_n command_v that_o if_o any_o man_n know_v where_o he_o be_v he_o shall_v show_v it_o that_o they_o may_v apprehend_v he_o we_o say_v he_o will_v now_o show_v to_o the_o jew_n where_o christ_n be_v i_o wish_v that_o all_o who_o be_v of_o their_o seed_n will_v hear_v and_o understand_v who_o give_v command_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v show_v they_o where_o christ_n be_v let_v they_o come_v to_o the_o church_n and_o hear_v where_o christ_n be_v and_o let_v they_o apprehend_v he_o they_o shall_v hear_v it_o of_o we_o they_o shall_v hear_v it_o of_o the_o gospel_n he_o be_v slay_v by_o their_o parent_n he_o be_v bury_v and_o rise_v again_o he_o be_v know_v of_o his_o disciple_n in_o their_o presence_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n there_o he_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n who_o be_v judge_v shall_v come_v to_o judge_v let_v they_o hear_v and_o hold_v thou_o will_v answer_v who_o shall_v i_o hold_v one_o that_o be_v absent_a send_v up_o faith_n and_o thou_o have_v hold_v he_o thy_o parent_n hold_v he_o in_o the_o flesh_n hold_v thou_o he_o in_o thy_o heart_n because_o christ_n be_v absent_a be_v present_a for_o if_o he_o be_v not_o present_a with_o we_o he_o can_v not_o be_v hold_v by_o we_o but_o because_o that_o be_v true_a which_o he_o say_v i_o be_o with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o be_v both_o go_v and_o yet_o be_v here_o he_o have_v both_o return_v and_o not_o desert_v we_o he_o have_v enter_v his_o body_n into_o heaven_n and_o have_v not_o take_v away_o his_o majesty_n from_o the_o earth_n h_z cyril_n in_o joh._n l._n 11._o c._n 3._o for_o though_o he_o be_v absent_a in_o body_n present_v himself_o to_o the_o father_n for_o we_o and_o sit_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n yet_o he_o dwell_v in_o his_o saint_n by_o his_o spirit_n and_o suffer_v they_o not_o to_o be_v orphan_n iv_o by_o this_o only_a orthodox_n faith_n we_o know_v where_o jesus_n christ_n our_o treasure_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v and_o call_v upon_o to_o wit_n above_o in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n a_o of_o god_n for_o where_o our_o treasure_n be_v there_o will_v our_o b_o heart_n be_v from_o whence_o we_o must_v look_v for_o he_o namely_o from_o c_o heaven_n where_o last_o our_o mansion_n must_v be_v after_o this_o life_n to_o wit_n in_o heaven_n where_o our_o lord_n have_v prepare_v a_o place_n d_o for_o we_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n a_o col._n 3.1_o seek_v the_o thing_n above_o where_o christ_n be_v sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n b_o mat._n 6.21_o where_o our_o treasure_n be_v there_o be_v our_o heart_n c_o phil._n 3.20_o our_o conversation_n be_v in_o heaven_n whence_o we_o look_v for_o the_o saviour_n etc._n etc._n d_o john_n 14.3_o i_o go_v to_o prepare_v a_o place_n for_o you_o i_o will_v come_v again_o and_o receive_v you_o unto_o myself_o that_o where_o i_o be_o there_o you_o may_v be_v also_o john_n 17.24_o father_n i_o will_v that_o where_o i_o be_o they_o may_v be_v with_o i_o that_o they_o may_v see_v my_o glory_n e_z 1_o thes_n 4.17_o we_o shall_v be_v catch_v in_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o air_n and_o so_o we_o shall_v be_v always_o with_o the_o lord_n v._o we_o reject_v those_o odious_a fiction_n of_o the_o ubiquitaries_n molesta_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d onera_fw-la molesta_fw-la as_o stranger_n from_o the_o christian_a faith_n concern_v heaven_n and_o christ_n ascension_n the_o most_o of_o which_o foppery_n to_o be_v see_v in_o their_o book_n be_v scarce_o worthy_a of_o lucian_n sure_o pious_a posterity_n will_v have_v cause_n enough_o to_o groan_n and_o to_o wonder_v at_o the_o power_n of_o error_n 1._o they_o say_v that_o the_o heaven_n which_o be_v above_o this_o world_n which_o brentius_n say_v he_o laugh_v at_o be_v a_o old_a wife_n dream_n or_o a_o thalmudicall_a or_o mahumeticall_a fancy_n 2._o that_o the_o heaven_n into_o which_o christ_n ascend_v be_v not_o a_o place_n nor_o above_o but_o be_v god_n himself_o because_o forsooth_o the_o heaven_n be_v incarnate_a and_o die_v for_o we_o that_o it_o be_v everywhere_o in_o which_o also_o hell_n itself_o be_v and_o in_o which_o not_o only_o the_o saint_n but_o satan_n also_o and_o his_o angel_n be_v find_v 3._o that_o christ_n ascend_v often_o into_o heaven_n invisible_o in_o the_o womb_n of_o his_o mother_n where_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n on_o the_o cross_n where_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n he_o lay_v aside_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n in_o his_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a last_o visible_o upon_o mount_n olivet_n 4._o that_o this_o last_o ascension_n be_v not_o a_o true_a ascension_n into_o heaven_n but_o a_o wonderful_a lift_v up_o of_o christ_n body_n even_o to_o the_o cloud_n a_o sight_n dispense_v with_o or_o a_o visible_a vanish_v 5._o that_o christ_n in_o pass_v to_o his_o father_n that_o be_v in_o his_o ascension_n to_o heaven_n do_v not_o a_o hair_n
predestination_n but_o rather_o a_o merciful_a just_a and_o eternal_a disposition_n of_o god_n future_a work_n be_v hereby_o declare_v iv_o for_o predestination_n that_o we_o may_v after_o the_o plain_a way_n define_v it_o to_o wit_n from_o the_o effect_n of_o god_n know_v to_o we_o irrefragable_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o experience_n be_v god_n eternal_a ah_o counsel_n by_o which_o out_o of_o the_o lose_v b_o mass_n of_o mankind_n of_o his_o mere_a good_a will_n c_o he_o bestow_v justice_n and_o life_n eternal_a upon_o who_o he_o please_v in_o his_o mercy_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n and_o free_o by_o christ_n do_v save_v they_o and_o to_o who_o he_o please_v he_o deny_v to_o give_v that_o faith_n justice_n and_o e_o life_n but_o leave_v they_o in_o their_o wickedness_n blindness_n and_o destruction_n f_z for_o their_o sin_n he_o do_v most_o just_o addict_v and_o condemn_v they_o g_o to_o eternal_a pain_n that_o by_o save_v of_o the_o believer_n he_o may_v declare_v his_o mercy_n h_o and_o grace_n by_o damn_v the_o wicked_a he_o may_v manifest_v his_o justice_n and_o power_n to_o ay_o all_o eternity_n testimony_n of_o scripture_n a_o act_n 15.18_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v know_v to_o he_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n ephes_n 1.4_o as_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v act_n 4.28_o that_o they_o may_v do_v whatsoever_o thy_o hand_n and_o thy_o counsel_n have_v fore_o appoint_v to_o be_v do_v rom._n 9.11_o that_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n which_o be_v according_a to_o election_n may_v remain_v sure_a b_o rom._n 9.21_o have_v not_o the_o potter_n power_n over_o the_o clay_n that_o out_o of_o the_o same_o lump_n he_o may_v make_v one_o vessel_n to_o honour_n another_o to_o dishonour_v jerem._n 18.6_o can_v i_o as_o that_o potter_n do_v unto_o you_o o_o house_n of_o israel_n say_v the_o lord_n behold_v as_o the_o clay_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o potter_n so_o be_v you_o in_o my_o hand_n o_o israel_n c_o mat._n 11.26_o even_o so_o father_n because_o it_o have_v please_v thou_o rom._n 9.18_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v ephes_n 1.5_o 9_o have_v predestinate_v we_o unto_o the_o adoption_n of_o child_n by_o jesus_n christ_n to_o himself_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n have_v make_v know_v unto_o we_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o will_n according_a to_o his_o good_a pleasure_n which_o he_o have_v purpose_v in_o himself_o d_o rom._n 8.29_o 30._o who_o he_o fore-knew_a he_o also_o predestinate_v to_o be_v make_v conformable_a to_o the_o image_n of_o his_o son_n that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o firstborn_a among_o many_o brethren_n who_o he_o predestinate_v they_o also_o he_o have_v call_v and_o who_o he_o have_v call_v they_o he_o have_v justify_v and_o who_o he_o have_v justify_v they_o he_o have_v also_o glorify_v ephes_n 1.4_o 5._o as_o he_o have_v elect_v we_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v lay_v that_o we_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n before_o he_o in_o love_n who_o have_v predestinate_v we_o who_o he_o have_v adopt_v to_o be_v his_o son_n through_o jesus_n christ_n to_o himself_o according_a to_o the_o good_a pleasure_n of_o his_o will_n e_z rom._n 9.18_o he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v 2_o tim._n 2.25_o 26._o it_o behoove_v the_o jervant_n of_o god_n with_o all_o gentleness_n to_o try_v if_o at_o any_o time_n god_n will_v give_v they_o repentance_n to_o the_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v recover_v themselves_o out_o of_o the_o snare_n of_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v captivate_v by_o he_o at_o his_o will_n f_z rom._n 9.18_o he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o who_o he_o will_v be_v harden_v psal_n 81.13_o i_o leave_v they_o therefore_o to_o the_o strength_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n and_o they_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o counsel_n act_n 14.16_o and_o who_o in_o former_a age_n suffer_v all_o nation_n to_o walk_v in_o their_o own_o way_n g_o deut._n 27.26_o curse_a be_v he_o that_o do_v not_o observe_v the_o word_n of_o this_o law_n to_o do_v they_o ezek._n 18.4_o that_o soul_n that_o sin_n shall_v die_v colos_n 3.6_o for_o which_o thing_n the_o wrath_n of_o god_n come_v upon_o the_o disobedient_a h_z rom._n 9.23_o that_o he_o may_v make_v know_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o glory_n towards_o the_o vessel_n of_o mercy_n which_o he_o have_v prepare_v for_o glory_n ephes_n 1.6_o to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n who_o have_v free_o make_v we_o acceptable_a in_o his_o belove_a ay_o rom._n 9.22_o but_o what_o if_o he_o willing_a to_o show_v his_o wrath_n and_o to_o make_v his_o power_n know_v have_v endure_v with_o much_o patience_n the_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n prepare_v for_o destruction_n prov._n 16.4_o god_n have_v make_v all_o thing_n for_o himself_o and_o the_o wicked_a also_o for_o the_o evil_a day_n v._o now_o because_o all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v know_v to_o himself_o from_o a_o eternity_n and_o with_o the_o father_n of_o light_n there_o be_v no_o change_n or_o shadow_n of_o b_o turn_v therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o whatsoever_o god_n do_v in_o time_n either_o in_o save_v or_o condemn_v of_o man_n that_o he_o do_v decree_n from_o eternity_n unchangeable_o to_o do_v and_o after_o that_o manner_n that_o he_o work_v now_o and_o as_o the_o scripture_n witness_v he_o do_v c_o work_n testimony_n of_o scripture_n a_o act_n 15.18_o all_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v know_v to_o he_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n b_o james_n 1.17_o with_o the_o father_n of_o light_n there_o be_v no_o change_v or_o shadow_n of_o turn_v c_o isai_n 14.27_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n have_v purpose_v and_o who_o shall_v disannul_v it_o vi_o we_o may_v also_o otherwise_o define_v predestination_n out_o of_o scripture_n à_fw-la priori_fw-la or_o from_o the_o cause_n that_o it_o be_v god_n a_o eternal_a b_o free_a c_o just_a d_o immutable_a and_o e_o holy_a f_o counsel_n and_o g_o purpose_n by_o which_o from_o eternity_n before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o h_z world_n out_o of_o mankind_n be_v equal_o corrupt_v and_o ay_o lose_v to_o wit_n which_o short_o after_o the_o holy_a creation_n by_o satan_n instigation_n be_v to_o fall_v and_o to_o be_v liable_a to_o eternal_a k_n death_n of_o his_o mere_a good_a pleasure_n and_o l_o mercy_n he_o foresee_v m_o some_o and_o elect_a n_o they_o and_o write_v they_o down_o in_o the_o book_n of_o o_o life_n and_o call_v they_o in_o p_o himself_o and_o ordain_v they_o for_o life_n q_o eternal_a to_o have_v salvation_n in_o r_o christ_n jesus_n who_o from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o his_o word_n and_o spirit_n he_o have_v effectual_o s_o call_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o son_n christ_n jesus_n have_v bestow_v on_o they_o true_a faith_n and_o hearty_a it_o conversion_n have_v u_o justify_v and_o at_o last_o will_v x_o glorify_v they_o but_o other_o most_o just_o and_o willing_o he_o have_v y_o pretermit_v and_o have_v not_o write_v they_o in_o the_o book_n of_o z_o life_n but_o have_v decree_v as_o impute_v vessel_n of_o his_o wrath_n for_o their_o sin_n to_o plague_v they_o with_o eternal_a aa_o death_n and_o in_o time_n he_o pity_v bb_n they_o not_o but_o have_v reprobate_v cc_o they_o to_o be_v forsake_v and_o leave_v in_o their_o blindness_n and_o wickedness_n that_o he_o may_v make_v manifest_a the_o riches_n of_o his_o bounty_n and_o grace_n upon_o the_o elect_a vessel_n of_o mercy_n and_o upon_o the_o reprobate_a vessel_n of_o wrath_n the_o power_n of_o his_o dd_o displeasure_n that_o so_o the_o merciful_a and_o just_a judge_n of_o the_o world_n may_v be_v to_o all_o eternity_n acknowledge_v and_o praise_v testimony_n of_o scripture_n concern_v predestination_n and_o election_n a_o psal_n 33.11_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n stand_v for_o ever_o the_o thought_n of_o his_o heart_n from_o age_n to_o age_n b_o rom._n 9.18_o god_n show_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v mat._n 20.15_o may_v not_o i_o do_v with_o my_o own_o as_o i_o listen_v esay_n 46.10_o my_o counsel_n shall_v stand_v and_o i_o will_v fulfil_v all_o my_o pleasure_n c_o dan._n 9.14_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v just_a in_o all_o the_o work_n that_o he_o have_v make_v d_o prov._n 19.21_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o lord_n abide_v isai_n 14.24_o 25._o as_o i_o have_v think_v so_o shall_v it_o come_v to_o pass_v as_o i_o have_v purpose_v it_o shall_v stand_v this_o be_v the_o purpose_n that_o
nothing_o though_o one_o shall_v cut_v or_o wring_v it_o therefore_o it_o be_v like_o a_o scabbard_n which_o admit_v of_o any_o sword_n not_o of_o steel_n only_o but_o of_o wood_n also_o or_o lead_v or_o brass_n do_v then_o parrie_n lie_v in_o this_o or_o have_v the_o jesuit_n lose_v his_o shame_n but_o yet_o they_o tear_v and_o defile_v the_o scripture_n more_o miserable_o for_o thus_o lindanus_n compare_v those_o that_o dispute_v out_o of_o scripture_n to_o man_n draw_v a_o wooden_a see_v to_o who_o be_v weary_a there_o be_v no_o end_n of_o delude_v hosius_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr expresso_fw-la dei_fw-la verbo_fw-la throughout_o it_o all_o handle_v these_o position_n that_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o heretic_n to_o dispute_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o must_v not_o encounter_v with_o heretic_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o scripture_n make_v heretic_n that_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n be_v allege_v by_o heretic_n protestant_n he_o mean_n against_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o other_o that_o be_v of_o the_o popish_a church_n be_v the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o devil_n we_o will_v not_o speak_v of_o other_o abominable_a passage_n which_o neither_o jew_n can_v attribute_v to_o moses_n his_o law_n nor_o mahumetan_n to_o their_o koran_n without_o punishment_n if_o heretofore_o such_o word_n have_v be_v speak_v of_o sibylla_n leaf_n the_o roman_n have_v punish_v they_o with_o death_n yet_o for_o these_o or_o the_o like_a meritorious_a word_n by_o which_o they_o think_v they_o have_v cut_v off_o the_o protestant_a sinew_n one_o receive_v a_o bishop_n robe_n another_z a_o cardinals_z hat_n as_o a_o reward_n from_o the_o pope_n o_o say_v they_o scoff_o what_o confer_v your_o scripture_n on_o you_o but_o boast_v not_o in_o thy_o wickedness_n 24._o psal_n 52.3_o pag._n 24._o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v powerful_a every_o day_n but_o say_v the_o jesuit_n this_o be_v devise_v by_o parrie_n whitaker_n and_o such_o like_a deform_a reformer_n that_o in_o popery_n the_o scripture_n be_v as_o much_o account_v as_o aesop_n fable_n without_o the_o church_n testimony_n that_o the_o pope_n prefer_v the_o church_n to_o the_o scripture_n that_o in_o popery_n they_o deny_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o live_v and_o believe_v aright_o i_o answer_v that_o nothing_o of_o this_o be_v object_v to_o we_o in_o the_o secular_a theme_n why_o then_o do_v you_o pass_v by_o thing_n true_o object_v and_o accuse_v popery_n of_o these_o thing_n cover_v if_o you_o be_v wise_a the_o ulcer_n of_o your_o babylon_n the_o first_o concern_v aesop_n fable_n brentius_n object_v to_o peter_n asoto_n a_o black_a friar_n anno_fw-la 1556._o he_o do_v not_o obscure_o say_v he_o intimate_v that_o he_o have_v plain_o the_o same_o opinion_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o any_o other_o asoticus_n have_v or_o have_v write_v of_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o scripture_n avail_v as_o much_o as_o aesop_n fable_n without_o the_o church_n authority_n to_o who_o hosius_n answer_v anno_o 1557._o say_v thus_o this_o may_v be_v speak_v in_o a_o pious_a meaning_n which_o any_o godly_a man_n endue_v with_o charity_n and_o that_o think_v no_o evil_a may_v draw_v out_o of_o these_o word_n for_o true_o if_o the_o church_n authority_n do_v not_o teach_v we_o that_o this_o scripture_n be_v canonical_a it_o shall_v have_v but_o little_a weight_n with_o we_o i_o pray_v you_o then_o how_o can_v you_o deny_v popery_n to_o be_v of_o this_o opinion_n which_o hosius_n so_o great_a a_o pillar_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n confess_v may_v be_v speak_v in_o a_o pious_a sense_n tell_v i_o then_o what_o odds_o be_v there_o between_o these_o word_n to_o have_v a_o very_a little_a weight_n and_o between_o these_o to_o avail_v as_o much_o as_o aesop_n fable_n i_o wonder_v you_o touch_v the_o other_o sore_o 12.13_o lib._n the_o council_n col_fw-fr 12.13_o which_o the_o chief_a of_o your_o side_n do_v avoid_v willing_o as_o a_o rock_n in_o the_o sea_n bellarmine_n have_v so_o touch_v it_o that_o he_o equal_n the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n in_o truth_n infallibility_n and_o canonical_a authority_n to_o the_o gospel_n and_o holy_a scripture_n and_o extol_v the_o pope_n far_o above_o decree_n of_o counsel_n how_o then_o be_v the_o pope_n according_a to_o bellarmine_n not_o prefer_v to_o scripture_n as_o for_o the_o three_o though_o we_o know_v not_o who_o object_v it_o to_o you_o as_o you_o utter_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v doubtless_o true_a for_o according_a to_o the_o same_o cardinal_n of_o you_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_v be_v but_o a_o partial_a rule_n of_o right_a live_n and_o believe_v but_o a_o partial_a rule_n be_v no_o rule_n if_o you_o will_v urge_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o rule_n for_o a_o rule_v in_fw-la greek_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o infallible_a rule_n require_v or_o admit_v of_o no_o addition_n or_o diminution_n to_o this_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o rule_n as_o the_o jesuit_n know_v a_o rule_n to_o be_v define_v by_o basil_n and_o varinus_n if_o then_o in_o popery_n the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v but_o a_o partial_a law_n of_o good_a life_n and_o faith_n not_o only_o admit_v but_o require_v also_o the_o addition_n of_o tradition_n it_o follow_v that_o this_o be_v plain_o deny_v in_o popery_n which_o this_o fellow_n lie_v be_v devise_v by_o parrie_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o right_a live_n and_o believe_v 22._o last_o what_o irenaeus_n write_v of_o ancient_a heretic_n when_o roman_a popery_n be_v argue_v out_o of_o scripture_n it_o be_v turn_v to_o the_o accusation_n of_o the_o very_a scripture_n as_o if_o they_o be_v not_o right_a or_o have_v any_o authority_n and_o because_o they_o be_v diverse_o take_v and_o because_o truth_n can_v be_v find_v out_o of_o they_o that_o want_v tradition_n 23._o roman_a popery_n then_o so_o many_o way_n the_o original_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v believe_v by_o tear_v in_o piece_n and_o blaspheme_v be_v deficient_a from_o the_o faith_n it_o overthrow_v faith_n both_o to_o itself_o and_o to_o its_o friend_n the_o assertion_n if_o at_o this_o day_n irenaeus_n that_o most_o ancient_a defender_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n against_o heretic_n do_v see_v our_o present_a controversy_n what_o else_o will_v he_o say_v think_v you_o against_o popery_n than_o what_o he_o write_v against_o the_o traditionarie_a heretic_n of_o his_o time_n that_o they_o can_v abide_v a_o encounter_n when_o they_o be_v convict_v out_o of_o scripture_n but_o fall_v upon_o accuse_v of_o the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o three_o way_n first_o that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o authority_n second_o that_o they_o be_v diverse_o speak_v obscure_a doubtful_a that_o final_o they_o be_v imperfect_a not_o contain_v all_o truth_n at_o last_o they_o fix_v upon_o tradition_n which_o they_o think_v to_o be_v more_o perfect_a than_o the_o scripture_n they_o receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n all_o the_o popish_a master_n now_o these_o hundred_o year_n past_a have_v after_o no_o other_o way_n handle_v this_o argument_n than_o what_o be_v the_o proper_a way_n of_o heretic_n of_o old_a for_o as_o often_o as_o they_o be_v convict_v by_o our_o man_n out_o of_o scripture_n do_v not_o they_o dissuade_v any_o meeting_n or_o encounter_n that_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a thing_n to_o draw_v a_o wooden_a see_v with_o we_o do_v they_o not_o fall_v upon_o accuse_v the_o scripture_n themselves_o that_o they_o have_v no_o authority_n but_o what_o they_o have_v from_o the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v most_o obscure_a and_o diverse_o speak_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o imperfection_n all_o truth_n can_v be_v find_v in_o they_o do_v not_o at_o length_n all_o their_o disputation_n end_n in_o tradition_n see_v the_o dispute_n and_o discourse_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o bellarmine_n stapleton_n lindanus_n hosius_n valentian_n and_o other_o popery_n then_o i_o hope_v understand_v who_o successor_n the_o scholastic_a synagogue_n and_o canonisticall_a in_o this_o part_n be_v and_o what_o principle_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v believe_v have_v by_o unworthy_a tear_v and_o blaspheme_v fall_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o have_v make_v the_o way_n of_o salvation_n unpassable_a both_o to_o itself_o and_o friend_n 24._o second_o to_o shake_v save_v faith_n by_o which_o we_o believe_v unto_o righteousness_n and_o to_o pull_v it_o out_o of_o man_n heart_n be_v to_o fail_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o to_o overthrow_v faith_n both_o to_o themselves_o and_o other_o 25._o save_v faith_n by_o which_o we_o believe_v unto_o righteousness_n be_v not_o only_o a_o assent_n or_o knowledge_n of_o these_o thing_n which_o concern_v god_n and_o christ_n be_v write_v in_o god_n word_n but_o especial_o a_o confidence_n in_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o
its_o power_n personal_o unite_v and_o always_o most_o present_a and_o in_o that_o fullness_n of_o the_o unite_a deity_n the_o assume_v nature_n as_o damascen_n say_v have_v a_o individable_a inseparable_a undis-jointed_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o place_n a_o indistant_a immanencie_n xxxviii_o the_o same_o opinion_n be_v at_o large_a handle_v in_o both_o the_o confession_n of_o master_n luther_n and_o by_o the_o allege_v of_o luther_n word_n in_o the_o breviate_v or_o form_n of_o that_o agreement_n public_o receive_v in_o those_o country_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o it_o be_v approve_v by_o it_o the_o animadversion_n who_o will_v not_o cry_v out_o here_o with_o what_o knot_n shall_v i_o hold_v proteus_n so_o often_o change_v his_o countenance_n who_o can_v here_o catch_v the_o sophister_n i_o warrant_v you_o unskilful_a man_n will_v grow_v amaze_v at_o such_o stupendous_a teratology_n he_o say_v that_o the_o mass_n of_o mankind_n be_v not_o assume_v hither_o or_o thither_o to_o this_o or_o that_o place_n speech_n monstrous_a speech_n that_o not_o any_o place_n but_o the_o illocall_a hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o but_o or_o terminus_n ad_fw-la quem_fw-la of_o the_o assumption_n that_o the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v transfer_v to_o be_v the_o terminus_n of_o the_o assumption_n that_o it_o have_v in_o a_o most_o high_a manner_n transcend_v all_o locality_n that_o in_o the_o word_n it_o have_v obtain_v a_o illocall_a way_n of_o subsist_v that_o the_o word_n have_v the_o assume_v nature_n within_o the_o embracement_n of_o the_o whole_a fullness_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n with_o itself_o within_o itself_o by_o itself_o in_o its_o power_n that_o the_o humane_a nature_n in_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o unite_a deity_n have_v its_o immanencie_n undisjoynted_a who_o ever_o speak_v thus_o in_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o black_a stuff_n of_o the_o fish_n sepia_n and_o the_o empty_a smoke_n of_o juggle_a trick_n by_o which_o the_o simple_a doctrine_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v obscure_v and_o the_o foolish_a world_n be_v bewitch_v that_o live_v and_o see_v they_o see_v not_o nor_o feel_v such_o gross_a lie_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o be_v a_o new_a and_o a_o treacherous_a way_n of_o speak_v quite_o different_a from_o these_o brief_a delineation_n of_o wholesome_a word_n in_o scripture_n and_o in_o pious_a antiquity_n concern_v this_o mystery_n by_o which_o the_o sophister_n sufficient_o if_o i_o be_o not_o deceive_v have_v testify_v that_o this_o which_o he_o utter_v be_v a_o new_a and_o monstrous_a kind_n of_o doctrine_n for_o they_o that_o broach_v new_a doctrine_n do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n devise_v new_a phrase_n now_o to_o the_o matter_n the_o sophister_n in_o these_o position_n devise_v another_o false_a supposition_n by_o which_o he_o may_v keep_v up_o the_o ubiquity_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o union_n of_o the_o word_n be_v make_v illocall_a this_o he_o endeavour_v to_o beat_v out_o of_o the_o apostolical_a term_n of_o assumption_n besprinkle_v some_o schoole-terme_n but_o he_o malicious_o deprave_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n and_o phrase_n of_o the_o schoolman_n for_o the_o assume_v of_o abraham_n seed_n do_v not_o signify_v in_o paul_n a_o exalt_v or_o transfer_v of_o man_n nature_n into_o the_o illocalitie_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o which_o it_o be_v also_o make_v illocall_a but_o a_o individual_a hypostatical_a union_n with_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o nature_n remain_v entire_a and_o the_o true_a property_n thereof_o because_o the_o flesh_n assume_v be_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n not_o out_o of_o the_o union_n but_o in_o the_o union_n not_o without_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o word_n both_o before_o and_o in_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v our_o brother_n flesh_n of_o our_o flesh_n and_o bone_n of_o our_o bone_n in_o which_o communion_n of_o our_o flesh_n with_o the_o son_n of_o god_n all_o christian_a comfort_n and_o salvation_n consist_v so_o the_o apostle_n himself_o in_o the_o precedent_a word_n explain_v this_o assume_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n as_o the_o child_n be_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n he_o corrupt_v also_o the_o schoole-terme_n for_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o terminus_n ad_fw-la quem_fw-la of_o the_o assumption_n be_v not_o the_o nature_n but_o the_o person_n because_o as_o they_o say_v the_o union_n be_v make_v in_o the_o person_n not_o in_o the_o nature_n that_o be_v because_o by_o the_o union_n the_o two_o nature_n do_v not_o unite_v into_o one_o nature_n but_o into_o one_o person_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n subsist_v first_o in_o one_o now_o in_o two_o nature_n the_o divine_a and_o humane_a inconfused_a and_o entire_a but_o in_o no_o case_n do_v they_o speak_v or_o agree_v with_o this_o sophister_n that_o the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v transfer_v into_o the_o term_n of_o the_o assumption_n that_o be_v into_o the_o illocall_a hypostasis_fw-la of_o god_n that_o therein_o it_o may_v be_v illocall_a these_o be_v pestilent_a snare_n for_o so_o the_o sophister_n may_v ready_o infer_v that_o by_o the_o same_o way_n the_o flesh_n in_o the_o word_n be_v god_n be_v immense_a be_v everywhere_o but_o let_v we_o wipe_v away_o the_o paint_n and_o reduce_v this_o prodigious_a sophistry_n to_o a_o few_o point_n thus_o then_o in_o brief_a he_o argue_v what_o be_v assume_v into_o the_o illocall_a hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o word_n that_o do_v obtain_v by_o this_o assumption_n a_o illocall_a manner_n of_o existence_n in_o the_o word_n that_o be_v to_o be_v illocall_a the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v assume_v into_o the_o illocall_a hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o word_n ergo_fw-la the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n have_v obtain_v in_o the_o word_n a_o illocall_a manner_n of_o existence_n that_o be_v to_o be_v illocall_a he_o prove_v the_o major_a thes_n 36._o because_o in_o god_n and_o in_o the_o hypostasis_fw-la of_o god_n all_o thought_n of_o place_n and_o locality_n cease_v the_o minor_a thes_n 34._o because_o the_o illocall_a hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o word_n be_v the_o term_n of_o the_o assumption_n into_o which_o by_o the_o union_n the_o flesh_n be_v tranfer_v also_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o athanasius_n define_v the_o hypostatical_a union_n by_o the_o assume_v of_o the_o humanity_n into_o god_n answ_n that_o here_o be_v sophistry_n be_v plain_a by_o the_o manifest_a falsehood_n of_o the_o conclusion_n fight_v against_o the_o whole_a evangelicall_n history_n which_o testify_v that_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n assume_v by_o the_o word_n be_v always_o local_a the_o major_a then_o be_v only_o true_a of_o that_o which_o be_v assume_v either_o by_o conversion_n into_o that_o local_a hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o word_n or_o by_o coequation_n with_o it_o but_o not_o of_o that_o which_o be_v assume_v by_o such_o a_o hypostatical_a union_n which_o leave_v and_o preserve_v entire_a and_o inconfused_a the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o that_o which_o assume_v and_o of_o that_o which_o be_v assume_v now_o that_o in_o this_o sense_n and_o manner_n the_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v assume_v into_o the_o illocall_a hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n none_o but_o a_o nestorian_a or_o eutychian_a heretic_n will_v deny_v so_o then_o here_o be_v four_o term_n in_o this_o argument_n if_o the_o sophister_n will_v not_o admit_v of_o a_o distinction_n and_o also_o will_v contend_v the_o major_a to_o be_v true_a of_o that_o which_o be_v assume_v by_o the_o hypostatical_a union_n the_o propriety_n be_v preserve_v we_o deny_v it_o all_o as_o be_v most_o false_a for_o the_o hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o word_n as_o it_o be_v illocall_a so_o also_o it_o be_v infinite_a eternal_a incorporeal_a beget_v of_o the_o father_n incarnate_a by_o nature_n god_n neither_o for_o this_o be_v it_o true_a that_o whatsoever_o be_v assume_v by_o such_o a_o hypostasis_fw-la of_o the_o word_n that_o must_v be_v also_o infinite_a eternal_a incorporeal_a beget_v of_o the_o father_n incarnate_a and_o by_o nature_n god_n second_o we_o deny_v also_o the_o consequence_n because_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a fallacy_n of_o that_o which_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o illocalitie_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v feign_v to_o be_v the_o assumption_n of_o the_o flesh_n into_o the_o illocall_a word_n which_o cause_n be_v no_o cause_n for_o the_o word_n assume_v not_o the_o flesh_n by_o which_o or_o because_o it_o be_v illocall_a but_o by_o which_o or_o because_o it_o be_v the_o second_o person_n distinguish_v from_o the_o father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n the_o reason_n of_o this_o be_v firm_a and_o manifest_a which_o the_o sophister_n by_o no_o ink_n of_o the_o sepia_n
of_o christ_n receive_v into_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n what_o will_v from_o hence_o follow_v sure_o a_o world_n of_o absurdity_n 1._o so_o original_a sin_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o neither_o shall_v there_o be_v any_o guilt_n thereof_o and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v false_a to_o say_v that_o all_o man_n be_v bear_v the_o son_n of_o wrath_n because_o all_o shall_v be_v bear_v in_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n but_o the_o scripture_n pronounce_v that_o all_o man_n by_o nature_n be_v the_o son_n of_o wrath_n 2._o all_o the_o child_n of_o turk_n saracen_n centaur_n and_o cannibal_n which_o be_v out_o of_o the_o covenant_n and_o church_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v bear_v in_o the_o favour_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o so_o salvation_n shall_v be_v find_v without_o the_o covenant_n and_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n o_o man_n as_o cruel_a as_o briareus_n who_o doubt_v not_o to_o place_v the_o infant_n of_o turk_n bear_v out_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n but_o as_o for_o christian_a infant_n before_o baptism_n cruel_o they_o fling_v they_o headlong_o into_o hell_n 3._o this_o monster_n overthrow_v another_o tenet_n of_o they_o concern_v the_o infant_n of_o faith_n full_a man_n who_o be_v bear_v out_o of_o grace_n yea_o who_o be_v before_o baptism_n possess_v with_o the_o devil_n and_o damn_v for_o they_o place_v they_o all_o in_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n 4._o all_o wicked_a man_n who_o before_o christ_n death_n be_v damn_v to_o hell_n by_o christ_n death_n be_v again_o redeem_v from_o hell_n and_o bring_v into_o god_n favour_n how_o then_o can_v they_o again_o fall_v from_o thence_o who_o be_v dead_a be_v receive_v when_o they_o can_v not_o any_o more_o sin_n by_o incredulity_n therefore_o wicked_a man_n either_o must_v remain_v in_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o be_v save_v without_o faith_n or_o else_o without_o incredulity_n they_o must_v be_v cast_v headlong_o from_o thence_o both_o which_o have_v a_o kind_n of_o madness_n in_o they_o 5._o either_o incredulity_n be_v no_o sin_n or_o if_o it_o be_v all_o sin_n be_v not_o expiate_v by_o christ_n death_n or_o if_o all_o be_v this_o will_n at_o least_o be_v more_o effectual_a than_o christ_n death_n but_o all_o this_o be_v false_a and_o impious_a for_o infidelity_n be_v both_o a_o sin_n and_o the_o mother_n of_o other_o sin_n and_o in_o the_o regenerate_a now_o and_o then_o it_o appear_v with_o other_o sin_n notwithstanding_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v most_o effectual_o expiate_v and_o pardon_v 6._o it_o be_v a_o impudent_a lie_n that_o wicked_a man_n be_v not_o condemn_v for_o sin_n but_o for_o incredulity_n only_o for_o what_o be_v that_o 1_o cor._n 6.10_o thief_n covetous_a person_n drunkard_n etc._n etc._n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o which_o christ_n in_o his_o last_o judgement_n shall_v say_v to_o the_o wicked_a go_v into_o hell_n fire_n because_o you_o feed_v i_o not_o &_o c_o be_v not_o incredulity_n the_o chief_a of_o all_o sin_n yea_o we_o conclude_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o they_o be_v condemn_v for_o sin_n because_o they_o be_v condemn_v for_o incredulity_n for_o scarce_o be_v there_o any_o sin_n more_o grievous_a than_o infidelity_n but_o the_o apostate_n trifle_n too_o much_o with_o his_o exception_n say_v that_o incredulity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v consider_v as_o a_o sin_n in_o itself_o but_o as_o it_o reject_v the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n be_v not_o i_o pray_v the_o reject_v of_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n the_o contempt_n of_o god_n calling_n a_o most_o grievous_a sin_n for_o this_o cause_n then_o incredulity_n be_v a_o sin_n in_o that_o it_o reject_v salvation_n and_o the_o mean_n thereof_o 7._o this_o prodigious_a doctrine_n give_v to_o the_o wicked_a that_o notwithstanding_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v original_a sin_n and_o the_o guilt_n of_o wicked_a man_n yet_o that_o this_o be_v at_o no_o time_n in_o they_o nor_o can_v true_o be_v pronounce_v of_o they_o let_v we_o take_v a_o turkish_a infant_n or_o a_o barbarian_a man_n of_o year_n who_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n death_n and_o therefore_o never_o reject_v he_o by_o incredulity_n now_o let_v these_o disputer_n tell_v we_o what_o moment_n of_o time_n will_v they_o give_v they_o to_o be_v in_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n justify_v and_o sanctify_a and_o reconcile_v to_o he_o will_v they_o whilst_o they_o be_v embryo_n or_o new_o bear_v or_o child_n or_o young_a man_n or_o old_a man_n or_o last_o live_a or_o dead_a yea_o let_v they_o tell_v if_o they_o be_v receive_v how_o they_o fall_v away_o when_o neither_o sin_n nor_o actual_a incredulity_n can_v drive_v they_o thence_o for_o these_o do_v not_o besall_n they_o but_o be_v expiate_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n whatsoever_o they_o say_v we_o shall_v hear_v that_o either_o without_o faith_n some_o do_v please_v god_n or_o that_o without_o actual_a incredulity_n some_o be_v debar_v from_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n which_o be_v false_a and_o impious_a prodigy_n overthrow_v one_o the_o other_o last_o what_o great_a blasphemy_n can_v be_v speak_v then_o that_o god_n receive_v into_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_v all_o infidel_n and_o wicked_a man_n cain_n saul_n judas_n herod_n caligula_n and_o final_o all_o flagitious_a man_n yea_o hog_n what_o comfort_n can_v be_v more_o like_a to_o mockery_n then_o that_o thou_o shall_v be_v redeem_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n restore_v into_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n whereas_o many_o thousand_o of_o they_o who_o have_v be_v thus_o restore_v notwithstanding_o perish_v eternal_o i_o tremble_v to_o relate_v more_o of_o this_o monster_n therefore_o who_o will_v doubt_v but_o that_o so_o false_a impious_a absurd_a blasphemous_a tenet_n be_v to_o be_v banish_v from_o the_o confine_n of_o the_o church_n but_o here_o i_o think_v i_o hear_v they_o cry_v out_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v universal_a and_o belong_v to_o all_o but_o first_o we_o ask_v how_o this_o will_v follow_v the_o promise_n be_v universal_a ergo_fw-la reprobate_n impure_a dog_n and_o hog_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n beside_o so_o long_o as_o they_o urge_v their_o all_o all_z so_o long_o will_v we_o our_o believer_n believer_n for_o the_o promise_n be_v universal_a but_o with_o respect_n to_o penitent_n and_o believer_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o here_o before_o all_o the_o world_n we_o appeal_v to_o the_o literal_a promise_n come_v to_o i_o all_o say_v christ_n but_o he_o add_v that_o be_v weary_a and_o heavy_a lade_v that_o be_v who_o faint_a and_o groan_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o sin_n which_o they_o do_v who_o repent_v 10.43_o rom._n 3.22_o g●l_o 3.22_o john_n 3.36_o act._n 10.43_o and_o elsewhere_o so_o god_n love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v shall_v not_o perish_v but_o have_v life_n eternal_a so_o paul_n the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n upon_o all_o and_o over_o all_o that_o believe_v and_o elsewhere_o the_o scripture_n have_v conclude_v all_o under_o sin_n that_o the_o promise_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n jesus_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o all_o believer_n so_o christ_n he_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o son_n have_v life_n eternal_a and_o peter_n to_o he_o bear_v all_o the_o prophet_n witness_n that_o all_o who_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n through_o his_o name_n there_o be_v the_o like_a reason_n of_o all_o other_o evangelicall_n promise_n for_o they_o have_v annex_v express_o or_o tacit_o the_o condition_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n nor_o can_v they_o without_o blasphemy_n be_v understand_v but_o of_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o faithful_a but_o they_o will_v except_v that_o so_o the_o promise_n will_v be_v but_o particular_a 3_o l●b_n 1._o ●_o 3_o let_v prosper_n answer_v for_o we_o de_fw-fr vocat_fw-la gent._n the_o people_n of_o god_n have_v their_o plenitude_n and_o although_o a_o great_a part_n of_o man_n either_o neglect_n or_o reject_v the_o grace_n of_o salvation_n yet_o in_o the_o elect_a and_o those_o that_o be_v fore-seen_a and_o separate_v there_o be_v a_o special_a kind_n of_o universality_n that_o out_o of_o all_o the_o world_n the_o world_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v deliver_v and_o out_o of_o all_o man_n all_o man_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v redeem_v therefore_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n remain_v universal_a to_o the_o faithful_a although_o they_o belong_v not_o to_o dog_n and_o swine_n the_o major_a also_o of_o the_o practical_a syllogism_n remain_v universal_a thus_o the_o promise_n belong_v to_o all_o believer_n i_o believe_v ergo_fw-la they_o belong_v to_o i_o again_o christ_n die_v and_o pray_v
of_o our_o catechism_n which_o say_v that_o by_o nature_n we_o be_v propense_a to_o hate_n god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n that_o we_o be_v so_o corrupt_a that_o to_o do_v well_o we_o be_v altogether_o unapt_a this_o sure_a be_v it_o which_o resistible_a grace_n go_v about_o to_o abolish_v out_o of_o all_o this_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o remonstrant_n in_o both_o article_n 7._o art_n 1._o coth_a 7._o especial_o in_o the_o closure_n of_o the_o four_o either_o abuse_n the_o equivocation_n of_o the_o word_n grace_v explain_v above_o affirm_v that_o the_o operation_n of_o call_v persuade_v exciting_a grace_n which_o they_o call_v adventitious_a and_o precedaneous_a be_v resistible_a which_o orthodoxal_a man_n deny_v not_o and_o so_o with_o vain_a debate_n they_o trouble_v the_o church_n and_o state_n or_o by_o understand_v the_o operation_n of_o grace_n produce_v faith_n and_o conversion_n they_o dangerous_o corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n with_o pelagius_n or_o last_o they_o do_v entangle_v themselves_o again_o with_o the_o knot_n of_o contradiction_n in_o ascribe_v to_o operate_a grace_n alone_a faith_n and_o conversion_n and_o make_v the_o same_o resistible_a that_o be_v indifferent_o depend_v from_o the_o will_n of_o man_n again_o while_o they_o profess_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o mere_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o make_v the_o same_o to_o depend_v resistible_o from_o the_o assent_n of_o man_n will_n they_o fall_v into_o such_o contradiction_n that_o no_o sophistry_n can_v reconcile_v but_o 502._o col._n p._n 502._o when_o the_o adversary_n as_o we_o say_v before_o be_v force_v to_o contradict_v himself_o it_o be_v know_v that_o he_o be_v subdue_v they_o deny_v that_o grace_n whether_o resistible_a 226._o col._n p._n 226._o or_o not_o proceed_v from_o god_n absolute_a decree_n for_o this_o they_o hate_v worse_o than_o dog_n or_o snake_n but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o the_o apostle_n witness_v this_o where_o he_o conjoin_v vocation_n not_o external_a only_o 8.30_o rom._n 8.30_o but_o most_o proper_o internal_a justification_n the_o producer_n of_o faith_n immediate_o with_o predestination_n as_o the_o effect_n with_o the_o first_o cause_n but_o whatever_o this_o be_v it_o will_v no_o wise_a help_n their_o turn_n suppose_v there_o be_v no_o predestination_n in_o heaven_n no_o election_n yet_o this_o most_o firm_a principle_n of_o scripture_n remain_v assert_v by_o austin_n in_o the_o fore-alledged_n place_n that_o almighty_a god_n have_v a_o most_o omnipotent_a power_n over_o the_o will_n of_o man_n and_o that_o he_o can_v according_a to_o his_o pleasure_n either_o leave_v the_o will_n themselves_o in_o their_o sin_n or_o incline_v they_o to_o good_a i.e._n make_v they_o irresistible_a to_o his_o grace_n with_o which_o principle_n if_o resistibilitie_n of_o grace_n can_v stand_v which_o they_o feign_v i.e._n the_o imbecility_n and_o indifferency_n for_o effect_v of_o faith_n and_o that_o power_n of_o man_n will_n in_o rebel_a against_o grace_n and_o god_n himself_o work_v in_o man_n i_o say_v if_o these_o can_v stand_v god_n can_v not_o be_v almighty_a nor_o will_v there_o ever_o be_v any_o conversion_n of_o man_n to_o god_n nor_o regeneration_n which_o be_v so_o evident_a that_o no_o sophistry_n can_v elude_v it_o and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a concern_v the_o 3d._o &_o 4_o article_n and_o how_o tolerable_a these_o be_v every_o man_n may_v see_v article_n v._n who_o be_v by_o true_a faith_n ingraff_v into_o jesus_n christ_n and_o therefore_o partaker_n of_o his_o quicken_a spirit_n they_o have_v power_n sufficient_a to_o fight_v against_o satan_n sin_n the_o world_n and_o their_o own_o flesh_n and_o to_o obtain_v the_o victory_n but_o by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n so_o jesus_n christ_n be_v present_a by_o his_o spirit_n to_o they_o in_o all_o tentation_n stretch_v out_o his_o hand_n and_o confirm_v they_o if_o they_o be_v ready_a for_o the_o combat_n if_o they_o require_v his_o help_n nor_o be_v want_v to_o themselves_o and_o this_o so_o much_o 11.15_o hebr._n 3.6_o 14._o 2_o pet._n 1.10_o judas_n 3._o 1_o tim._n 1.14_o heb._n 11.15_o that_o by_o no_o cunning_a of_o satan_n or_o strength_n can_v they_o be_v seduce_v or_o take_v out_o of_o christ_n hand_n according_a to_o that_o of_o john_n 10._o no_o man_n can_v take_v they_o out_o of_o my_o hand_n but_o whether_o these_o same_o may_v not_o by_o their_o negligence_n desert_n their_o beginning_n in_o christ_n and_o embrace_v again_o this_o present_a world_n and_o whether_o they_o may_v not_o fall_v off_o from_o the_o holy_a doctrine_n once_o deliver_v to_o they_o make_v shipwreck_n of_o their_o conscience_n and_o fall_v away_o from_o grace_n aught_o to_o be_v weigh_v full_o out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n before_o they_o can_v be_v teach_v with_o full_a tranquillity_n of_o mind_n and_o plenitude_n of_o confidence_n the_o examination_n whereas_o the_o remonstrant_n in_o this_o article_n profess_v that_o they_o deliver_v in_o their_o conference_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o saint_n perseverance_n in_o faith_n we_o may_v just_o wonder_v why_o they_o be_v so_o wary_a in_o express_v the_o word_n perseverance_n or_o persevere_v and_o much_o more_o why_o they_o be_v afraid_a once_o to_o name_n god_n except_o it_o be_v because_o they_o betray_v in_o the_o adversative_a clause_n that_o they_o will_v have_v both_o the_o name_n and_o the_o thing_n quite_o extermine_v out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o their_o conscience_n do_v so_o dictate_v to_o they_o that_o god_n will_v never_o bless_v so_o wicked_a a_o design_n that_o they_o can_v endure_v perseverance_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n 407._o col._n p._n 407._o and_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o write_v that_o it_o be_v ill_o do_v to_o call_v it_o so_o but_o if_o we_o must_v speak_v the_o truth_n by_o this_o mean_v they_o do_v too_o much_o bewray_v their_o perverseness_n and_o ignorance_n for_o be_v it_o not_o perverseness_n to_o say_v that_o be_v not_o right_o call_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n which_o god_n have_v so_o often_o in_o scripture_n promise_v to_o bestow_v upon_o the_o faithful_a and_o which_o the_o saint_n so_o earnest_o desire_v god_n to_o bestow_v on_o they_o be_v it_o not_o ignorance_n to_o deny_v perseverance_n to_o be_v a_o gift_n and_o that_o infuse_v and_o not_o to_o think_v that_o perseverance_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o faith_n itself_o persevere_v to_o the_o end_n but_o be_v not_o faith_n the_o gift_n of_o god_n infuse_v 502._o col._n p._n 502._o do_v not_o they_o themselves_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v the_o mere_a gift_n of_o god_n but_o they_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o austin_n in_o a_o book_n by_o itself_o assert_v the_o gift_n of_o perseverance_n against_o the_o remainder_n of_o the_o pelagian_o to_o which_o book_n he_o give_v the_o title_n of_o the_o good_a of_o perseverance_n the_o argument_n thereof_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o same_o to_o wit_n that_o perseverance_n in_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v of_o god_n and_o be_v give_v true_o to_o all_o that_o be_v call_v and_o predestinate_a according_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n this_o be_v augustine_n opinion_n these_o man_n throughout_o all_o their_o conference_n as_o appear_v can_v well_o enough_o endure_v the_o perseverance_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o no_o way_n that_o it_o shall_v proceed_v from_o predestination_n as_o the_o effect_n from_o the_o cause_n or_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v hold_v certain_a see_v all_o the_o engine_n of_o these_o five_o article_n be_v devise_v and_o direct_v to_o overthrow_v the_o counsel_n of_o god_n discretive_a predestination_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a to_o erect_v the_o idol_n of_o self-power_n in_o we_o but_o let_v we_o weigh_v the_o word_n of_o this_o five_o article_n the_o five_o answer_v the_o four_o for_o whereas_o the_o four_o with_o the_o three_o be_v very_o bountiful_a in_o extol_v of_o grace_n but_o what_o it_o give_v in_o the_o last_o clause_n it_o take_v away_o so_o this_o very_o careful_o provide_v for_o the_o mean_n and_o security_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o faithful_a in_o the_o three_o former_a part_n for_o it_o be_v quadripartite_a as_o it_o seem_v 1._o that_o they_o have_v mean_n sufficient_a to_o resist_v satan_n and_o sin_n by_o the_o help_n of_o grace_n 2._o that_o jesus_n christ_n in_o all_o tentation_n be_v present_a with_o they_o and_o reach_v out_o his_o hand_n to_o they_o 3._o that_o he_o so_o confirm_v they_o that_o they_o can_v be_v seduce_v or_o take_v out_o of_o christ_n hand_n by_o any_o deceit_n or_o violence_n of_o satan_n with_o such_o large_a privilege_n they_o have_v sufficient_o provide_v for_o perseverance_n but_o as_o before_o so_o here_o there_o be_v poison_n in_o the_o tail_n for_o what_o they_o grant_v in_o the_o adversative_a appendix_n they_o call_v it_o in_o